<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<h1> ANABASIS </h1>
<p><br/></p>
<h2> By Xenophon </h2>
<p><br/></p>
<h3> Translation by H. G. Dakyns </h3>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<p>Dedicated To<br/>
Rev. B. Jowett, M.A.<br/>
Master of Balliol College<br/>
Regius Professor of Greek in the University of Oxford<br/></p>
<p>Xenophon the Athenian was born 431 B.C. He was a<br/>
pupil of Socrates. He marched with the Spartans,<br/>
and was exiled from Athens. Sparta gave him land<br/>
and property in Scillus, where he lived for many<br/>
years before having to move once more, to settle<br/>
in Corinth. He died in 354 B.C.<br/>
<br/>
The Anabasis is his story of the march to Persia<br/>
to aid Cyrus, who enlisted Greek help to try and<br/>
take the throne from Artaxerxes, and the ensuing<br/>
return of the Greeks, in which Xenophon played a<br/>
leading role. This occurred between 401 B.C. and<br/>
March 399 B.C.<br/></p>
<p><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/></p>
<blockquote>
<p><big><b>CONTENTS</b></big></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0003"> <b>BOOK I.</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0004"> I. </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0005"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0006"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0007"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0008"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0009"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0010"> VII </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0011"> VIII </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0012"> IX </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0013"> X </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0014"> <b>BOOK II</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0015"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0016"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0017"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0018"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0019"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0020"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0021"> <b>BOOK III</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0022"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0023"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0024"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0025"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0026"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0027"> <b>BOOK IV</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0028"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0029"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0030"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0031"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0032"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0033"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0034"> VII </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0035"> VIII </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0036"> <b>BOOK V</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0037"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0038"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0039"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0040"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0041"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0042"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0043"> VII </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0044"> VIII </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0045"> <b>BOOK VI</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0046"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0047"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0048"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0049"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0050"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0051"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0052"> <b>BOOK VII</b> </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0053"> I </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0054"> II </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0055"> III </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0056"> IV </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0057"> V </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0058"> VI </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0059"> VII </SPAN></p>
<p><SPAN href="#link2H_4_0060"> VIII </SPAN></p>
<p><br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0001" id="link2H_4_0001"></SPAN></p>
<h4>
PREPARER'S NOTE
</h4>
<p>This was typed from Dakyns' series, "The Works of Xenophon," a four-volume
set. The complete list of Xenophon's works (though there is doubt about
some of these) is:</p>
<p>Work Number of books<br/>
<br/>
The Anabasis 7<br/>
The Hellenica 7<br/>
The Cyropaedia 8<br/>
The Memorabilia 4<br/>
The Symposium 1<br/>
The Economist 1<br/>
On Horsemanship 1<br/>
The Sportsman 1<br/>
The Cavalry General 1<br/>
The Apology 1<br/>
On Revenues 1<br/>
The Hiero 1<br/>
The Agesilaus 1<br/>
The Polity of the Athenians and the Lacedaemonians 2<br/></p>
<p>Text in brackets "{}" is my transliteration of Greek text into English
using an Oxford English Dictionary alphabet table. The diacritical marks
have been lost.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0002" id="link2H_4_0002"></SPAN></p>
<h1> ANABASIS </h1>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0003" id="link2H_4_0003"></SPAN> BOOK I <SPAN name="link2H_4_0004" id="link2H_4_0004"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I. </h2>
<p>Darius and Parysatis had two sons: the elder was named Artaxerxes, and the
younger Cyrus. Now, as Darius lay sick and felt that the end of life drew
near, he wished both his sons to be with him. The elder, as it chanced,
was already there, but Cyrus he must needs send for from the province over
which he had made him satrap, having appointed him general moreover of all
the forces that muster in the plain of the Castolus. Thus Cyrus went up,
taking with him Tissaphernes as his friend, and accompanied also by a body
of Hellenes, three hundred heavy armed men, under the command of Xenias
the Parrhasian (1).</p>
<p>(1) Parrhasia, a district and town in the south-west of Arcadia.<br/></p>
<p>Now when Darius was dead, and Artaxerxes was established in the kingdom,
Tissaphernes brought slanderous accusations against Cyrus before his
brother, the king, of harbouring designs against him. And Artaxerxes,
listening to the words of Tissaphernes, laid hands upon Cyrus, desiring to
put him to death; but his mother made intercession for him, and sent him
back again in safety to his province. He then, having so escaped through
peril and dishonour, fell to considering, not only how he might avoid ever
again being in his brother's power, but how, if possible, he might become
king in his stead. Parysatis, his mother, was his first resource; for she
had more love for Cyrus than for Artaxerxes upon his throne. Moreover
Cyrus's behaviour towards all who came to him from the king's court was
such that, when he sent them away again, they were better friends to
himself than to the king his brother. Nor did he neglect the barbarians in
his own service; but trained them, at once to be capable as warriors and
devoted adherents of himself. Lastly, he began collecting his Hellenic
armament, but with the utmost secrecy, so that he might take the king as
far as might be at unawares.</p>
<p>The manner in which he contrived the levying of the troops was as follows:
First, he sent orders to the commandants of garrisons in the cities (so
held by him), bidding them to get together as large a body of picked
Peloponnesian troops as they severally were able, on the plea that
Tissaphernes was plotting against their cities; and truly these cities of
Ionia had originally belonged to Tissaphernes, being given to him by the
king; but at this time, with the exception of Miletus, they had all
revolted to Cyrus. In Miletus, Tissaphernes, having become aware of
similar designs, had forestalled the conspirators by putting some to death
and banishing the remainder. Cyrus, on his side, welcomed these fugitives,
and having collected an army, laid siege to Miletus by sea and land,
endeavouring to reinstate the exiles; and this gave him another pretext
for collecting an armament. At the same time he sent to the king, and
claimed, as being the king's brother, that these cities should be given to
himself rather than that Tissaphernes should continue to govern them; and
in furtherance of this end, the queen, his mother, co-operated with him,
so that the king not only failed to see the design against himself, but
concluded that Cyrus was spending his money on armaments in order to make
war on Tissaphernes. Nor did it pain him greatly to see the two at war
together, and the less so because Cyrus was careful to remit the tribute
due to the king from the cities which belonged to Tissaphernes.</p>
<p>A third army was being collected for him in the Chersonese, over against
Abydos, the origin of which was as follows: There was a Lacedaemonian
exile, named Clearchus, with whom Cyrus had become associated. Cyrus
admired the man, and made him a present of ten thousand darics (2).
Clearchus took the gold, and with the money raised an army, and using the
Chersonese as his base of operations, set to work to fight the Thracians
north of the Hellespont, in the interests of the Hellenes, and with such
happy result that the Hellespontine cities, of their own accord, were
eager to contribute funds for the support of his troops. In this way,
again, an armament was being secretly maintained for Cyrus.</p>
<p>(2) A Persian gold coin = 125.55 grains of gold.<br/></p>
<p>Then there was the Thessalian Aristippus, Cyrus's friend (3), who, under
pressure of the rival political party at home, had come to Cyrus and asked
him for pay for two thousand mercenaries, to be continued for three
months, which would enable him, he said, to gain the upper hand of his
antagonists. Cyrus replied by presenting him with six months' pay for four
thousand mercenaries—only stipulating that Aristippus should not
come to terms with his antagonists without final consultation with
himself. In this way he secured to himself the secret maintenance of a
fourth armament.</p>
<p>(3) Lit. "guest-friend." Aristippus was, as we learn from the "Meno"<br/>
of Plato, a native of Larisa, of the family of the Aleuadae, and a<br/>
pupil of Gorgias. He was also a lover of Menon, whom he appears to<br/>
have sent on this expedition instead of himself.<br/></p>
<p>Further, he bade Proxenus, a Boeotian, who was another friend, get
together as many men as possible, and join him in an expedition which he
meditated against the Pisidians (4), who were causing annoyance to his
territory. Similarly two other friends, Sophaenetus the Stymphalian (5),
and Socrates the Achaean, had orders to get together as many men as
possible and come to him, since he was on the point of opening a campaign,
along with Milesian exiles, against Tissaphernes. These orders were duly
carried out by the officers in question.</p>
<p>(4) Lit. "into the country of the Pisidians."<br/>
<br/>
(5) Of Stymphalus in Arcadia.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0005" id="link2H_4_0005"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>But when the right moment seemed to him to have come, at which he should
begin his march into the interior, the pretext which he put forward was
his desire to expel the Pisidians utterly out of the country; and he began
collecting both his Asiatic and his Hellenic armaments, avowedly against
that people. From Sardis in each direction his orders sped: to Clearchus,
to join him there with the whole of his army; to Aristippus, to come to
terms with those at home, and to despatch to him the troops in his employ;
to Xenias the Arcadian, who was acting as general-in-chief of the foreign
troops in the cities, to present himself with all the men available,
excepting only those who were actually needed to garrison the citadels. He
next summoned the troops at present engaged in the siege of Miletus, and
called upon the exiles to follow him on his intended expedition, promising
them that if he were successful in his object, he would not pause until he
had reinstated them in their native city. To this invitation they
hearkened gladly; they believed in him; and with their arms they presented
themselves at Sardis. So, too, Xenias arrived at Sardis with the
contingent from the cities, four thousand hoplites; Proxenus, also, with
fifteen hundred hoplites and five hundred light-armed troops; Sophaenetus
the Stymphalian, with one thousand hoplites; Socrates the Achaean, with
five hundred hoplites; while the Megarion Pasion came with three hundred
hoplites and three hundred peltasts (1). This latter officer, as well as
Socrates, belonged to the force engaged against Miletus. These all joined
him at Sardis.</p>
<p>(1) "Targeteers" armed with a light shield instead of the larger one<br/>
of the hoplite, or heavy infantry soldier. Iphicrates made great<br/>
use of this arm at a later date.<br/></p>
<p>But Tissaphernes did not fail to note these proceedings. An equipment so
large pointed to something more than an invasion of Pisidia: so he argued;
and with what speed he might, he set off to the king, attended by about
five hundred horse. The king, on his side, had no sooner heard from
Tissaphernes of Cyrus's great armament, than he began to make
counter-preparations.</p>
<p>Thus Cyrus, with the troops which I have named, set out from Sardis, and
marched on and on through Lydia three stages, making two-and-twenty
parasangs (2), to the river Maeander. That river is two hundred feet (3)
broad, and was spanned by a bridge consisting of seven boats. Crossing it,
he marched through Phrygia a single stage, of eight parasangs, to
Colossae, an inhabited city (4), prosperous and large. Here he remained
seven days, and was joined by Menon the Thessalian, who arrived with one
thousand hoplites and five hundred peltasts, Dolopes, Aenianes, and
Olynthians. From this place he marched three stages, twenty parasangs in
all, to Celaenae, a populous city of Phrygia, large and prosperous. Here
Cyrus owned a palace and a large park (5) full of wild beasts, which he
used to hunt on horseback, whenever he wished to give himself or his
horses exercise. Through the midst of the park flows the river Maeander,
the sources of which are within the palace buildings, and it flows through
the city of Celaenae. The great king also has a palace in Celaenae, a
strong place, on the sources of another river, the Marsyas, at the foot of
the acropolis. This river also flows through the city, discharging itself
into the Maeander, and is five-and-twenty feet broad. Here is the place
where Apollo is said to have flayed Marsyas, when he had conquered him in
the contest of skill. He hung up the skin of the conquered man, in the
cavern where the spring wells forth, and hence the name of the river,
Marsyas. It was on this site that Xerxes, as tradition tells, built this
very palace, as well as the citadel of Celaenae itself, on his retreat
from Hellas, after he had lost the famous battle. Here Cyrus remained for
thirty days, during which Clearchus the Lacedaemonian arrived with one
thousand hoplites and eight hundred Thracian peltasts and two hundred
Cretan archers. At the same time, also, came Sosis the Syracusian with
three thousand hoplites, and Sophaenetus the Arcadian (6) with one
thousand hoplites; and here Cyrus held a review, and numbered his Hellenes
in the park, and found that they amounted in all to eleven thousand
hoplites and about two thousand peltasts.</p>
<p>(2) The Persian "farsang" = 30 stades, nearly 1 league, 3 1/2 statute<br/>
miles, though not of uniform value in all parts of Asia.<br/>
<br/>
(3) "Two plethra": the plethron = about 101 English feet.<br/>
<br/>
(4) Lit. "inhabited," many of the cities of Asia being then as now<br/>
deserted, but the suggestion is clearly at times "thickly<br/>
inhabited," "populous."<br/>
<br/>
(5) Lit. "paradise," an oriental word = park or pleasure ground.<br/>
<br/>
(6) Perhaps this should be Agias the Arcadian, as Mr. Macmichael<br/>
suggests. Sophaenetus has already been named above.<br/></p>
<p>From this place he continued his march two stages—ten parasangs—to
the populous city of Peltae, where he remained three days; while Xenias,
the Arcadian, celebrated the Lycaea (7) with sacrifice, and instituted
games. The prizes were headbands of gold; and Cyrus himself was a
spectator of the contest. From this place the march was continued two
stages—twelve parasangs—to Ceramon-agora, a populous city, the
last on the confines of Mysia. Thence a march of three stages—thirty
parasangs—brought him to Caystru-pedion (8), a populous city. Here
Cyrus halted five days; and the soldiers, whose pay was now more than
three months in arrear, came several times to the palace gates demanding
their dues; while Cyrus put them off with fine words and expectations, but
could not conceal his vexation, for it was not his fashion to stint
payment, when he had the means. At this point Epyaxa, the wife of
Syennesis, the king of the Cilicians, arrived on a visit to Cyrus; and it
was said that Cyrus received a large gift of money from the queen. At this
date, at any rate, Cyrus gave the army four months' pay. The queen was
accompanied by a bodyguard of Cilicians and Aspendians; and, if report
speaks truly, Cyrus had intimate relations with the queen.</p>
<p>(7) The Lycaea, an Arcadian festival in honour of Zeus {Arcaios}, akin<br/>
to the Roman Lupercalia, which was originally a shepherd festival,<br/>
the introduction of which the Romans ascribe to the Arcadian<br/>
Evander.<br/>
<br/>
(8) Lit. "plain of the Cayster," like Ceramon-agora, "the market of<br/>
the Ceramians" above, the name of a town.<br/></p>
<p>From this place he marched two stages—ten parasangs—to
Thymbrium, a populous city. Here, by the side of the road, is the spring
of Midas, the king of Phrygia, as it is called, where Midas, as the story
goes, caught the satyr by drugging the spring with wine. From this place
he marched two stages—ten parasangs—to Tyriaeum, a populous
city. Here he halted three days; and the Cilician queen, according to the
popular account, begged Cyrus to exhibit his armament for her amusement.
The latter being only too glad to make such an exhibition, held a review
of the Hellenes and barbarians in the plain. He ordered the Hellenes to
draw up their lines and post themselves in their customary battle order,
each general marshalling his own battalion. Accordingly they drew up
four-deep. The right was held by Menon and those with him; the left by
Clearchus and his men; the centre by the remaining generals with theirs.
Cyrus first inspected the barbarians, who marched past in troops of horses
and companies of infantry. He then inspected the Hellenes; driving past
them in his chariot, with the queen in her carriage. And they all had
brass helmets and purple tunics, and greaves, and their shields uncovered
(9).</p>
<p>(9) I.e. ready for action, c.f. "bayonets fixed".<br/></p>
<p>After he had driven past the whole body, he drew up his chariot in front
of the centre of the battle-line, and sent his interpreter Pigres to the
generals of the Hellenes, with orders to present arms and to advance along
the whole line. This order was repeated by the generals to their men; and
at the sound of the bugle, with shields forward and spears in rest, they
advanced to meet the enemy. The pace quickened, and with a shout the
soldiers spontaneously fell into a run, making in the direction of the
camp. Great was the panic of the barbarians. The Cilician queen in her
carriage turned and fled; the sutlers in the marketing place left their
wares and took to their heels; and the Hellenes meanwhile came into camp
with a roar of laughter. What astounded the queen was the brilliancy and
order of the armament; but Cyrus was pleased to see the terror inspired by
the Hellenes in the hearts of the Asiatics.</p>
<p>From this place he marched on three stages—twenty parasangs—to
Iconium, the last city of Phrygia, where he remained three days. Thence he
marched through Lycaonia five stages—thirty parasangs. This was
hostile country, and he gave it over to the Hellenes to pillage. At this
point Cyrus sent back the Cilician queen to her own country by the
quickest route; and to escort her he sent the soldiers of Menon, and Menon
himself. With the rest of the troops he continued his march through
Cappadocia four stages—twenty-five parasangs—to Dana, a
populous city, large and flourishing. Here they halted three days, within
which interval Cyrus put to death, on a charge of conspiracy, a Persian
nobleman named Megaphernes, a wearer of the royal purple; and along with
him another high dignitary among his subordinate commanders.</p>
<p>From this place they endeavoured to force a passage into Cilicia. Now the
entrance was by an exceedingly steep cart-road, impracticable for an army
in face of a resisting force; and report said that Syennesis was on the
summit of the pass guarding the approach. Accordingly they halted a day in
the plain; but next day came a messenger informing them that Syenesis had
left the pass; doubtless, after perceiving that Menon's army was already
in Cilicia on his own side of the mountains; and he had further been
informed that ships of war, belonging to the Lacedaemonians and to Cyrus
himself, with Tamos on board as admiral, were sailing round from Ionia to
Cilicia. Whatever the reason might be, Cyrus made his way up into the
hills without let or hindrance, and came in sight of the tents where the
Cilicians were on guard. From that point he descended gradually into a
large and beautiful plain country, well watered, and thickly covered with
trees of all sorts and vines. This plain produces sesame plentifully, as
also panic and millet and barley and wheat; and it is shut in on all sides
by a steep and lofty wall of mountains from sea to sea. Descending through
this plain country, he advanced four stages—twenty-five parasangs—to
Tarsus, a large and prosperous city of Cilicia. Here stood the palace of
Syennesis, the king of the country; and through the middle of the city
flows a river called the Cydnus, two hundred feet broad. They found that
the city had been deserted by its inhabitants, who had betaken themselves,
with Syennesis, to a strong place on the hills. All had gone, except the
tavern-keepers. The sea-board inhabitants of Soli and Issi also remained.
Now Epyaxa, Syennesis's queen, had reached Tarsus five days in advance of
Cyrus. During their passage over the mountains into the plain, two
companies of Menon's army were lost. Some said they had been cut down by
the Cilicians, while engaged on some pillaging affair; another account was
that they had been left behind, and being unable to overtake the main
body, or discover the route, had gone astray and perished. However it was,
they numbered one hundred hoplites; and when the rest arrived, being in a
fury at the destruction of their fellow soldiers, they vented their spleen
by pillaging the city of Tarsus and the palace to boot. Now when Cyrus had
marched into the city, he sent for Syennesis to come to him; but the
latter replied that he had never yet put himself into the hands of any one
who was his superior, nor was he willing to accede to the proposal of
Cyrus now; until, in the end, his wife persuaded him, and he accepted
pledges of good faith. After this they met, and Syennesis gave Cyrus large
sums in aid of his army; while Cyrus presented him with the customary
royal gifts—to wit, a horse with a gold bit, a necklace of gold, a
gold bracelet, and a gold scimitar, a Persian dress, and lastly, the
exemption of his territory from further pillage, with the privilege of
taking back the slaves that had been seized, wherever they might chance to
come upon them.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0006" id="link2H_4_0006"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>At Tarsus Cyrus and his army halted for twenty days; the soldiers refusing
to advance further, since the suspicion ripened in their minds, that the
expedition was in reality directed against the king; and as they insisted,
they had not engaged their services for that object. Clearchus set the
example of trying to force his men to continue their march; but he had no
sooner started at the head of his troops than they began to pelt him and
his baggage train, and Clearchus had a narrow escape of being stoned to
death there and then. Later on, when he perceived that force was useless,
he summoned an assembly of his own men; and for a long while he stood and
wept, while the men gazed in silent astonishment. At last he spoke as
follows: "Fellow soldiers, do not marvel that I am sorely distressed on
account of the present troubles. Cyrus has been no ordinary friend to me.
When I was in banishment he honoured me in various ways, and made me also
a present of ten thousand darics. These I accepted, but not to lay them up
for myself for private use; not to squander them in pleasure, but to
expend them on yourselves. And, first of all, I went to war with the
Thracians, and with you to aid, I wreaked vengeance on them in behalf of
Hellas; driving them out of the Chersonese, when they wanted to deprive
its Hellenic inhabitants of their lands. But as soon as Cyrus summoned me,
I took you with me and set out, so that, if my benefactor had any need of
me, I might requite him for the good treatment I myself had received at
his hands.... But since you are not minded to continue the march with me,
one of two things is left to me to do; either I must renounce you for the
sake of my friendship with Cyrus, or I must go with you at the cost of
deceiving him. Whether I am about to do right or not, I cannot say, but I
choose yourselves; and, whatever betide, I mean to share your fate. Never
shall it be said of me by any one that, having led Greek troops against
the barbarians (1), I betrayed the Hellenes, and chose the friendship of
the barbarian. No! since you do not choose to obey and follow me, I will
follow after you. Whatever betide, I will share your fate. I look upon you
as my country, my friends, my allies; with you I think I shall be
honoured, wherever I be; without you I do not see how I can help a friend
or hurt a foe. My decision is taken. Wherever you go, I go also."</p>
<p>(1) Lit. "into the country of the barbarian."<br/></p>
<p>Such were his words. But the soldiers, not only his own, but the rest
also, when they heard what he said, and how he had scouted the idea of
going up to the great king's palace (2), expressed their approval; and
more than two thousand men deserted Xenias and Pasion, and took their arms
and baggage-train, and came and encamped with Clearchus. But Cyrus, in
despair and vexation at this turn of affairs, sent for Clearchus. He
refused to come; but, without the knowledge of the soldiers, sent a
message to Cyrus, bidding him keep a good heart, for that all would
arrange itself in the right way; and bade him keep on sending for him,
whilst he himself refused to go. After that he got together his own men,
with those who had joined him, and of the rest any who chose to come, and
spoke as follows: "Fellow soldiers, it is clear that the relations of
Cyrus to us are identical with ours to him. We are no longer his soldiers,
since we have ceased to follow him; and he, on his side, is no longer our
paymaster. He, however, no doubt considers himself wronged by us; and
though he goes on sending for me, I cannot bring myself to go to him: for
two reasons, chiefly from a sense of shame, for I am forced to admit to
myself that I have altogether deceived him; but partly, too, because I am
afraid of his seizing me and inflicting a penalty on the wrongs which he
conceives that I have done him. In my opinion, then, this is no time for
us to go to sleep and forget all about ourselves, rather it is high time
to deliberate on our next move; and as long as we do remain here, we had
better bethink us how we are to abide in security; or, if we are resolved
to turn our backs at once, what will be the safest means of retreat; and,
further, how we are to procure supplies, for without supplies there is no
profit whatsoever in the general or the private soldier. The man with whom
we have to deal is an excellent friend to his friends, but a very
dangerous enemy to his foes. And he is backed by a force of infantry and
cavalry and ships such as we all alike very well see and know, since we
can hardly be said to have posted ourselves at any great distance from
him. If, then, any one has a suggestion to make, now is the time to
speak." With these words he ceased.</p>
<p>(2) Or "how he insisted that he was not going up."<br/></p>
<p>Then various speakers stood up; some of their own motion to propound their
views; others inspired by Clearchus to dilate on the hopeless difficulty
of either staying, or going back without the goodwill of Cyrus. One of
these, in particular, with a make-believe of anxiety to commence the
homeward march without further pause, called upon them instantly to choose
other generals, if Clearchus were not himself prepared to lead them back:
"Let them at once purchase supplies" (the market being in the heart of the
Asiatic camp), "let them pack up their baggage: let them," he added, "go
to Cyrus and ask for some ships in order to return by sea: if he refused
to give them ships, let them demand of him a guide to lead them back
through a friendly district; and if he would not so much as give them a
guide, they could but put themselves, without more ado, in marching order,
and send on a detachment to occupy the pass—before Cyrus and the
Cilicians, whose property," the speaker added, "we have so plentifully
pillaged, can anticipate us." Such were the remarks of that speaker; he
was followed by Clearchus, who merely said: "As to my acting personally as
general at this season, pray do not propose it: I can see numerous
obstacles to my doing so. Obedience, in the fullest, I can render to the
man of your choice, that is another matter: and you shall see and know
that I can play my part, under command, with the best of you."</p>
<p>After Clearchus another spokesman stood up, and proceeded to point out the
simplicity of the speaker, who proposed to ask for vessels, just as if
Cyrus were minded to renounce the expedition and sail back again. "And let
me further point out," he said, "what a simple-minded notion it is to beg
a guide of the very man whose designs we are marring. If we can trust any
guide whom Cyrus may vouchsafe to us, why not order Cyrus at once to
occupy the pass on our behoof? For my part, I should think twice before I
set foot on any ships that he might give us, for fear lest he should sink
them with his men-of-war; and I should equally hesitate to follow any
guide of his: he might lead us into some place out of which we should find
it impossible to escape. I should much prefer, if I am to return home
against the will of Cyrus at all, to give him the slip, and so begone:
which indeed is impossible. But these schemes are simply nonsensical. My
proposal is that a deputation of fit persons, with Clearchus, should go to
Cyrus: let them go to Cyrus and ask him: what use he proposes to make of
us? and if the business is at all similar to that on which he once before
employed a body of foreigners—let us by all means follow: let us
show that we are the equals of those who accompanied him on his much up
formerly. But if the design should turn out to be of larger import than
the former one—involving more toil and more danger—we should
ask him, either to give us good reasons for following his lead, or else
consent to send us away into a friendly country. In this way, whether we
follow him, we shall do so as friends, and with heart and soul, or whether
we go back, we shall do so in security. The answer to this shall be
reported to us here, and when we have heard it, we will advise as to our
best course."</p>
<p>This resolution was carried, and they chose and sent a deputation with
Clearchus, who put to Cyrus the questions which had been agreed upon by
the army. Cyrus replied as follows: That he had received news that
Abrocomas, an enemy of his, was posted on the Euphrates, twelve stages
off; his object was to march against this aforesaid Abrocomas: and if he
were still there, he wished to inflict punishment on him, "or if he be
fled" (so the reply concluded), "we will there deliberate on the best
course." The deputation received the answer and reported it to the
soldiers. The suspicion that he was leading them against the king was not
dispelled; but it seemed best to follow him. They only demanded an
increase of pay, and Cyrus promised to give them half as much again as
they had hitherto received—that is to say, a daric and a half a
month to each man, instead of a daric. Was he really leading them to
attack the king? Not even at this moment was any one apprised of the fact,
at any rate in any open and public manner.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0007" id="link2H_4_0007"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>From this point he marched two stages—ten parasangs—to the
river Psarus, which is two hundred feet broad, and from the Psarus he
marched a single stage—five parasangs—to Issi, the last city
in Cilicia. It lies on the seaboard—a prosperous, large and
flourishing town. Here they halted three days, and here Cyrus was joined
by his fleet. There were thirty-five ships from Peloponnesus, with the
Lacedaemonian admiral Pythagoras on board. These had been piloted from
Ephesus by Tamos the Egyptian, who himself had another fleet of
twenty-five ships belonging to Cyrus. These had formed Tamos's blockading
squadron at Miletus, when that city sided with Tissaphernes; he had also
used them in other military services rendered to Cyrus in his operations
against that satrap. There was a third officer on board the fleet, the
Lacedaemonian Cheirisophus, who had been sent for by Cyrus, and had
brought with him seven hundred hoplites, over whom he was to act as
general in the service of Cyrus. The fleet lay at anchor opposite Cyrus's
tent. Here too another reinforcement presented itself. This was a body of
four hundred hoplites, Hellenic mercenaries in the service of Abrocomas,
who deserted him for Cyrus, and joined in the campaign against the king.</p>
<p>From Issi, he marched a single stage—five parasangs—to the
gates of Cilicia and Syria. This was a double fortress: the inner and
nearer one, which protects Cilicia, was held by Syennesis and a garrison
of Cilicians; the outer and further one, protecting Syria, was reported to
be garrisoned by a body of the king's troops. Through the gap between the
two fortresses flows a river named the Carsus, which is a hundred feet
broad, and the whole space between was scarcely more than six hundred
yards. To force a passage here would be impossible, so narrow was the pass
itself, with the fortification walls stretching down to the sea, and
precipitous rocks above; while both fortresses were furnished with gates.
It was the existence of this pass which had induced Cyrus to send for the
fleet, so as to enable him to lead a body of hoplites inside and outside
the gates; and so to force a passage through the enemy, if he were
guarding the Syrian gate, as he fully expected to find Abrocomas doing
with a large army. This, however, Abrocomas had not done; but as soon as
he learnt that Cyrus was in Cilicia, he had turned round and made his exit
from Phoenicia, to join the king with an army amounting, as report said,
to three hundred thousand men.</p>
<p>From this point Cyrus pursued his march, through Syria a single stage—five
parasangs—to Myriandus, a city inhabited by Phoenicians, on the
sea-coast. This was a commercial port, and numerous merchant vessels were
riding at anchor in the harbour. Here they halted seven days, and here
Xenias the Arcadian general, and Pasion the Megarian got on board a
trader, and having stowed away their most valuable effects, set sail for
home; most people explained the act as the outcome of a fit of jealousy,
because Cyrus had allowed Clearchus to retain their men, who had deserted
to him, in hopes of returning to Hellas instead of marching against the
king; when the two had so vanished, a rumour spread that Cyrus was after
them with some ships of war, and some hoped the cowards might be caught,
others pitied them, if that should be their fate.</p>
<p>But Cyrus summoned the generals and addressed them: "Xenias and Pasion,"
he said, "have taken leave of us; but they need not flatter themselves
that in so doing they have stolen into hiding. I know where they are gone;
nor will they owe their escape to speed; I have men-of-war to capture
their craft, if I like. But heaven help me! if I mean to pursue them:
never shall it be said of me, that I turn people to account as long as
they stay with me, but as soon as they are minded to be off, I seize and
maltreat them, and strip them of their wealth. Not so! let them go with
the consciousness that our behaviour to them is better than theirs to us.
And yet I have their children and wives safe under lock and key in
Tralles; but they shall not be deprived even of these. They shall receive
them back in return for their former goodness to me." So he spoke, and the
Hellenes, even those who had been out of heart at the thought of marching
up the country, when they heard of the nobleness of Cyrus, were happier
and more eager to follow him on his path.</p>
<p>After this Cyrus marched onwards four stages—twenty parasangs—to
the river Chalus. That river is a hundred feet broad, and is stocked with
tame fish which the Syrians regard as gods, and will not suffer to be
injured—and so too the pigeons of the place. The villages in which
they encamped belonged to Parysatis, as part of her girdle money (1). From
this point he marched on five stages—thirty parasangs—to the
sources of the river Dardas, which is a hundred feet broad. Here stood the
palace of Belesys, the ruler of Syria, with its park—which was a
very large and beautiful one, and full of the products of all the seasons
in their course. But Cyrus cut down the park and burnt the palace. Thence
he marched on three stages—fifteen parasangs—to the river
Euphrates, which is nearly half a mile broad. A large and flourishing
city, named Thapsacus, stands on its banks. Here they halted five days,
and here Cyrus sent for the generals of the Hellenes, and told them that
the advance was now to be upon Babylon, against the great king; he bade
them communicate this information to the soldiers and persuade them to
follow. The generals called an assembly, and announced the news to the
soldiers. The latter were indignant and angry with the generals, accusing
them of having kept secret what they had long known; and refused to go,
unless such a bribe of money were given them as had been given to their
predecessors, when they went up with Cyrus to the court of his father, not
as now to fight a battle, but on a peaceful errand—the visit of a
son to his father by invitation. The demand was reported to Cyrus by the
generals, and he undertook to give each man five silver minae as soon as
Babylon was reached, and their pay in full, until he had safely conveyed
them back to Ionia again. In this manner the Hellenic force were persuaded—that
is to say, the majority of them. Menon, indeed, before it was clear what
the rest of the soldiers would do—whether, in fact they would follow
Cyrus or not—collected his own troops apart and made them the
following speech; "Men," he said, "if you will listen to me, there is a
method by which, without risk or toil, you may win the special favour of
Cyrus beyond the rest of the soldiers. You ask what it is I would have you
to do? I will tell you. Cyrus at this instant is begging the Hellenes to
follow him to attack the king. I say then: Cross the Euphrates at once,
before it is clear what answer the rest will make; if they vote in favour
of following, you will get the credit of having set the example, and Cyrus
will be grateful to you. He will look upon you as being the heartiest in
his cause; he will repay, as of all others he best knows how; while, if
the rest vote against crossing, we shall go back again; but as the sole
adherents, whose fidelity he can altogether trust, it is you whom Cyrus
will turn to account, as commandants of garrisons or captains of
companies. You need only ask him for whatever you want, and you will get
it from him, as being the friends of Cyrus."</p>
<p>(1) Cf. Plat. "Alcib." i. 123 B. "Why, I have been informed by a<br/>
credible person, who went up to the king (at Susa), that he passed<br/>
through a large tract of excellent land, extending for nearly a<br/>
day's journey, which the people of the country called the queen's<br/>
girdle, and another which they called her veil," etc. Olympiodorus<br/>
and the Scholiast both think that Plato here refers to Xenophon<br/>
and this passage of the "Anabasis." Grote thinks it very probable<br/>
that Plato had in his mind Xenophon (either his "Anabasis" or<br/>
personal communications with him).<br/></p>
<p>The men heard and obeyed, and before the rest had given their answer, they
were already across. But when Cyrus perceived that Menon's troops had
crossed, he was well pleased, and he sent Glus to the division in
question, with this message: "Soldiers, accept my thanks at present;
eventually you shall thank me. I will see to that, or my name is not
Cyrus." The soldiers therefore could not but pray heartily for his
success; so high their hopes ran. But to Menon, it was said, he sent gifts
with lordly liberality. This done, Cyrus proceeded to cross; and in his
wake followed the rest of the armament to a man. As they forded, never a
man was wetted above the chest: nor ever until this moment, said the men
of Thapascus, had the river been so crossed on foot, boats had always been
required; but these, at the present time, Abrocomas, in his desire to
hinder Cyrus from crossing, had been at pains to burn. Thus the passage
was looked upon as a thing miraculous; the river had manifestly retired
before the face of Cyrus, like a courtier bowing to his future king. From
this place he continued his march through Syria nine stages—fifty
parasangs—and they reached the river Araxes. Here were several
villages full of corn and wine; in which they halted three days, and
provisioned the army.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0008" id="link2H_4_0008"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>Thence he marched on through Arabia, keeping the Euphrates on the right,
five desert stages—thirty-five parasangs. In this region the ground
was one long level plain, stretching far and wide like the sea, full of
absinth; whilst all the other vegetation, whether wood or reed, was sweet
scented like spice or sweet herb; there were no trees; but there was wild
game of all kinds—wild asses in greatest abundance, with plenty of
ostriches; besides these, there were bustards and antelopes. These
creatures were occasionally chased by the cavalry. The asses, when
pursued, would run forward a space, and then stand still—their pace
being much swifter than that of horses; and as soon as the horses came
close, they went through the same performance. The only way to catch them
was for the riders to post themselves at intervals, and to hunt them in
relays, as it were. The flesh of those they captured was not unlike
venison, only more tender. No one was lucky enough to capture an ostrich.
Some of the troopers did give chase, but it had soon to be abandoned; for
the bird, in its effort to escape, speedily put a long interval between
itself and its pursuers; plying its legs at full speed, and using its
wings the while like a sail. The bustards were not so hard to catch when
started suddenly; for they only take short flights, like partridges, and
are soon tired. Their flesh is delicious.</p>
<p>As the army wended its way through this region, they reached the river
Mascas, which is one hundred feet in breadth. Here stood a big deserted
city called Corsote, almost literally environed by the stream, which flows
round it in a circle. Here they halted three days and provisioned
themselves. Thence they continued their march thirteen desert stages—ninety
parasangs—with the Euphrates still on their right, until they
reached the Gates. On these marches several of the baggage animals
perished of hunger, for there was neither grass nor green herb, or tree of
any sort; but the country throughout was barren. The inhabitants make
their living by quarrying millstones on the river banks, which they work
up and take to Babylon and sell, purchasing corn in exchange for their
goods. Corn failed the army, and was not to be got for money, except in
the Lydian market open in Cyrus's Asiatic army; where a kapithe of wheat
or barley cost four shekels; the shekel being equal to seven and a half
Attic obols, whilst the kapithe is the equivalent of two Attic choeneces
(1), dry measure, so that the soldiers subsisted on meat alone for the
whole period. Some of the stages were very long, whenever they had to push
on to find water or fodder; and once they found themselves involved in a
narrow way, where the deep clay presented an obstacle to the progress of
the wagons. Cyrus, with the nobles about him, halted to superintend the
operation, and ordered Glus and Pigres to take a body of barbarians and to
help in extricating the wagons. As they seemed to be slow about the
business, he turned round angrily to the Persian nobles and bade them lend
a hand to force the wagons out. Then, if ever, what goes to constitute one
branch of good discipline, was to be witnessed. Each of those addressed,
just where he chanced to be standing, threw off his purple cloak, and
flung himself into the work with as much eagerness as if it had been a
charge for victory. Down a steep hill side they flew, with their costly
tunics and embroidered trousers—some with the circlets round their
necks, and bracelets on their arms—in an instant, they had sprung
into the miry clay, and in less time than one could have conceived, they
had landed the wagons safe on terra firma.</p>
<p>(1) The choenix = about 1 quart (or, according to others, 1 1/2 pint).<br/>
It was the minimum allowance of corn for a man, say a slave, per<br/>
diem. The Spartan was allowed at the public table 2 choenices a<br/>
day.<br/></p>
<p>Altogether it was plain that Cyrus was bent on pressing on the march, and
averse to stoppages, except where he halted for the sake of provisioning
or some other necessary object; being convinced that the more rapidly he
advanced, the less prepared for battle would he find the king; while the
slower his own progress, the larger would be the hostile army which he
would find collected. Indeed, the attentive observer could see, at a
glance, that if the king's empire was strong in its extent of territory
and the number of inhabitants, that strength is compensated by an inherent
weakness, dependent upon the length of roads and the inevitable dispersion
of defensive forces, where an invader insists upon pressing home the war
by forced marches.</p>
<p>On the opposite side of the Euphrates to the point reached on one of these
desert stages, was a large and flourishing city named Charmande. From this
town the soldiers made purchases of provisions, crossing the river on
rafts, in the following fashion: They took the skins which they used as
tent coverings, and filled them with light grass; they then compressed and
stitched them tightly together by the ends, so that the water might not
touch the hay. On these they crossed and got provisions: wine made from
the date-nut, and millet or panic-corn, the common staple of the country.
Some dispute or other here occurred between the soldiers of Menon and
Clearchus, in which Clearchus sentenced one of Menon's men, as the
delinquent, and had him flogged. The man went back to his own division and
told them. Hearing what had been done to their comrade, his fellows
fretted and fumed, and were highly incensed against Clearchus. The same
day Clearchus visited the passage of the river, and after inspecting the
market there, was returning with a few followers, on horseback, to his
tent, and had to pass through Menon's quarters. Cyrus had not yet come up,
but was riding up in the same direction. One of Menon's men, who was
splitting wood, caught sight of Clearchus as he rode past, and aimed a
blow at him with his axe. The aim took no effect; when another hurled a
stone at him, and a third, and then several, with shouts and hisses.
Clearchus made a rapid retreat to his own troops, and at once ordered them
to get under arms. He bade his hoplites remain in position with their
shields resting against their knees, while he, at the head of his
Thracians and horsemen, of which he had more than forty in his army—Thracians
for the most part—advanced against Menon's soldiers, so that the
latter, with Menon himself, were panic-stricken, and ran to seize their
arms; some even stood riveted to the spot, in perplexity at the
occurrence. Just then Proxenus came up from behind, as chance would have
it, with his division of hoplites, and without a moment's hesitation
marched into the open space between the rival parties, and grounded arms;
then he fell to begging Clearchus to desist. The latter was not too well
pleased to hear his trouble mildly spoken of, when he had barely escaped
being stoned to death; and he bade Proxenus retire and leave the
intervening space open. At this juncture Cyrus arrived and inquired what
was happening. There was no time for hesitation. With his javelins firmly
grasped in his hands he galloped up—escorted by some of his faithful
bodyguard, who were present—and was soon in the midst, exclaiming:
"Clearchus, Proxenus, and you other Hellenes yonder, you know not what you
do. As surely as you come to blows with one another, our fate is sealed—this
very day I shall be cut to pieces, and so will you: your turn will follow
close on mine. Let our fortunes once take an evil turn, and these
barbarians whom you see around will be worse foes to us than those who are
at present serving the king." At these words Clearchus came to his senses.
Both parties paused from battle, and retired to their quarters: order
reigned.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0009" id="link2H_4_0009"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>As they advanced from this point (opposite Charmande), they came upon the
hoof-prints and dung of horses at frequent intervals. It looked like the
trail of some two thousand horses. Keeping ahead of the army, these
fellows burnt up the grass and everything else that was good for use. Now
there was a Persian, named Orontas; he was closely related to the king by
birth: and in matters pertaining to war reckoned among the best of Persian
warriors. Having formerly been at war with Cyrus, and afterwards
reconciled to him, he now made a conspiracy to destroy him. he made a
proposal to Cyrus: if Cyrus would furnish him with a thousand horsemen, he
would deal with these troopers, who were burning down everything in front
of them; he would lay an ambuscade and cut them down, or he would capture
a host of them alive; in any case, he would put a stop to their
aggressiveness and burnings; he would see to it that they did not ever get
a chance of setting eyes on Cyrus's army and reporting its advent to the
king. The proposal seemed plausible to Cyrus, who accordingly authorised
Orontas to take a detachment from each of the generals, and be gone. He,
thinking that he had got his horsemen ready to his hand, wrote a letter to
the king, announcing that he would ere long join him with as many troopers
as he could bring; he bade him, at the same time, instruct the royal
cavalry to welcome him as a friend. The letter further contained certain
reminders of his former friendship and fidelity. This despatch he
delivered into the hands of one who was a trusty messenger, as he thought;
but the bearer took and gave it to Cyrus. Cyrus read it. Orontas was
arrested. Then Cyrus summoned to his tent seven of the noblest Persians
among his personal attendants, and sent orders to the Hellenic generals to
bring up a body of hoplites. These troops were to take up a position round
his tent. This the generals did; bringing up about three thousand
hoplites. Clearchus was also invited inside, to assist at the
court-martial; a compliment due to the position he held among the other
generals, in the opinion not only of Cyrus, but also of the rest of the
court. When he came out, he reported the circumstances of the trial (as to
which, indeed, there was no mystery) to his friends. He said that Cyrus
opened the inquiry with these words: "I have invited you hither, my
friends, that I may take advice with you, and carry out whatever, in the
sight of God and man, it is right for me to do, as concerning the man
before you, Orontas. The prisoner was, in the first instance, given to me
by my father, to be my faithful subject. In the next place, acting, to use
his own words, under the orders of my brother, and having hold of the
acropolis of Sardis, he went to war with me. I met war with war, and
forced him to think it more prudent to desist from war with me: whereupon
we shook hands, exchanging solemn pledges. After that," and at this point
Cyrus turned to Orontas, and addressed him personally—"after that,
did I do you any wrong?" Answer, "Never." Again another question: "Then
later on, having received, as you admit, no injury from me, did you revolt
to the Mysians and injure my territory, as far as in you lay?"—"I
did," was the reply. "Then, once more having discovered the limits of your
power, did you flee to the altar of Artemis, crying out that you repented?
and did you thus work upon my feelings, that we a second time shook hands
and made interchange of solemn pledges? Are these things so?" Orontas
again assented. "Then what injury have you received from me," Cyrus asked,
"that now for the third time, you have been detected in a treasonous plot
against me?"—"I must needs do so," he answered. Then Cyrus put one
more question: "But the day may come, may it not, when you will once again
be hostile to my brother, and a faithful friend to myself?" The other
answered: "Even if I were, you could never be brought to believe it,
Cyrus."</p>
<p>At this point Cyrus turned to those who were present and said: "Such has
been the conduct of the prisoner in the past: such is his language now. I
now call upon you, and you first, Clearchus, to declare your opinion—what
think you?" And Clearchus answered: "My advice to you is to put this man
out of the way as soon as may be, so that we may be saved the necessity of
watching him, and have more leisure, as far as he is concerned, to requite
the services of those whose friendship is sincere."—"To this
opinion," he told us, "the rest of the court adhered." After that, at the
bidding of Cyrus, each of those present, in turn, including the kinsmen of
Orontas, took him by the girdle; which is as much as to say, "Let him die
the death," and then those appointed led him out; and they who in old days
were wont to do obeisance to him, could not refrain, even at that moment,
from bowing down before him, albeit they knew he was being led forth to
death.</p>
<p>After they had conducted him to the tent of Artapates, the trustiest of
Cyrus's wand-bearers, none set eyes upon him ever again, alive or dead. No
one, of his own knowledge, could declare the manner of his death; though
some conjectured one thing and some another. No tomb to mark his
resting-place, either then or since, was ever seen.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0010" id="link2H_4_0010"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VII </h2>
<p>From this place Cyrus marched through Babylonia three stages—twelve
parasangs. Now, on the third stage, about midnight, Cyrus held a review of
the Hellenes and Asiatics in the plain, expecting that the king would
arrive the following day with his army to offer battle. He gave orders to
Clearchus to take command of the right wing, and to Menon the Thessalian
of the left, while he himself undertook to the disposition of his own
forces in person. After the review, with the first approach of day,
deserters from the great king arrived, bringing Cyrus information about
the royal army. Then Cyrus summoned the generals and captains of the
Hellenes, and held a council of war to arrange the plan of battle. He took
this opportunity also to address the following words of compliment and
encouragement to the meeting: "Men of Hellas," he said, "it is certainly
not from dearth of barbarians to fight my battles that I put myself at
your head as my allies; but because I hold you to be better and stronger
than many barbarians. That is why I took you. See then that you prove
yourselves to be men worthy of the liberty which you possess, and which I
envy you. Liberty—it is a thing which, be well assured, I would
choose in preference to all my other possessions, multiplied many times.
But I would like you to know into what sort of struggle you are going:
learn its nature from one who knows. Their numbers are great, and they
come on with much noise; but if you can hold out against these two things,
I confess I am ashamed to think, what a sorry set of folk you will find
the inhabitants of this land to be. But you are men, and brave you must
be, being men: it is agreed; then if you wish to return home, any of you,
I undertake to send you back, in such sort that your friends at home shall
envy you; but I flatter myself I shall persuade many of you to accept what
I will offer you here, in lieu of what you left at home."</p>
<p>Here Gaulites, a Samian exile, and a trusty friend of Cyrus, being
present, exclaimed: "Ay, Cyrus, but some say you can afford to make large
promises now, because you are in the crisis of impending danger; but let
matters go well with you, will you recollect? They shake their heads.
Indeed, some add that, even if you did recollect, and were ever so
willing, you would not be able to make good all your promises, and repay."
When Cyrus heard that, he answered: "You forget, sirs, my father's empire
stretches southwards to a region where men cannot dwell by reason of the
heat, and northwards to a region uninhabitable through cold; but all the
intervening space is mapped out in satrapies belonging to my brother's
friends: so that if the victory be ours, it will be ours also to put our
friends in possession in their room. On the whole my fear is, not that I
may not have enough to give to each of my friends, but lest I may not have
friends enough on whom to bestow what I have to give, and to each of you
Hellenes I will give a crown of gold."</p>
<p>So they, when they heard these words, were once more elated than ever
themselves, and spread the good news among the rest outside. And there
came into his presence both the generals and some of the other Hellenes
also, claiming to know what they should have in the event of victory; and
Cyrus satisfied the expectations of each and all, and so dismissed them.
Now the advice and admonition of all who came into conversation with him
was, not to enter the battle himself, but to post himself in rear of
themselves; and at this season Clearchus put a question to him: "But do
you think that your brother will give battle to you, Cyrus?" and Cyrus
answered: "Not without a battle, be assured, shall the prize be won; if he
be the son of Darius and Parysatis, and a brother of mine."</p>
<p>In the final arming for battle at this juncture, the numbers were as
follows: Of Hellenes there were ten thousand four hundred heavy infantry
with two thousand five hundred targeteers, while the barbarians with Cyrus
reached a total of one hundred thousand. He had too about twenty
scythe-chariots. The enemy's forces were reported to number one million
two hundred thousand, with two hundred scythe-chariots, besides which he
had six thousand cavalry under Artagerses. These formed the immediate
vanguard of the king himself. The royal army was marshalled by four
generals or field-marshals, each in command of three hundred thousand men.
Their names were Abrocomas, Tissaphernes, Gobryas, and Arbaces. (But of
this total not more than nine hundred thousand were engaged in the battle,
with one hundred and fifty scythe-chariots; since Abrocomas, on his march
from Phoenicia, arrived five days too late for the battle.) Such was the
information brought to Cyrus by deserters who came in from the king's army
before the battle, and it was corroborated after the battle by those of
the enemy who were taken prisoners.</p>
<p>From this place Cyrus advanced one stage—three parasangs—with
the whole body of his troops, Hellenic and barbarian alike in order of
battle. He expected the king to give battle the same day, for in the
middle of this day's march a deep sunk trench was reached, thirty feet
broad, and eighteen feet deep. The trench was carried inland through the
plain, twelve parasang's distance, to the wall of Media (1). (Here are
canals, flowing from the river Tigris; they are four in number, each a
hundred feet broad, and very deep, with corn ships plying upon them; they
empty themselves into the Euphrates, and are at intervals of one parasang
apart, and are spanned by bridges.)</p>
<p>(1) For "the wall of Media" see Grote, "Hist. of Greece," vol. ix. p.<br/>
87 and foll. note 1 (1st ed.), and various authorities there<br/>
quoted or referred to. The next passage enclosed in () may<br/>
possibly be a commentator's or editor's note, but, on the whole, I<br/>
have thought it best to keep the words in the text instead of<br/>
relegating them, as heretofore, to a note. Perhaps some future<br/>
traveller may clear up all difficulties.<br/></p>
<p>Between the Euphrates and the trench was a narrow passage, twenty feet
only in breadth. The trench itself had been constructed by the great king
upon hearing of Cyrus's approach, to serve as a line of defence. Through
this narrow passage then Cyrus and his army passed, and found themselves
safe inside the trench. So there was no battle to be fought with the king
that day; only there were numerous unmistakable traces of horse and
infantry in retreat. Here Cyrus summoned Silanus, his Ambraciot
soothsayer, and presented him with three thousand darics; because eleven
days back, when sacrificing, he had told him that the king would not fight
within ten days, and Cyrus had answered: "Well, then, if he does not fight
within that time, he will not fight at all; and if your prophecy comes
true, I promise you ten talents." So now, that the ten days were passed,
he presented him with the above sum.</p>
<p>But as the king had failed to hinder the passage of Cyrus's army at the
trench, Cyrus himself and the rest concluded that he must have abandoned
the idea of offering battle, so that next day Cyrus advanced with less
than his former caution. On the third day he was conducting the march,
seated in his carriage, with only a small body of troops drawn up in front
of him. The mass of the army was moving on in no kind of order: the
soldiers having consigned their heavy arms to be carried in the wagons or
on the backs of beasts.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0011" id="link2H_4_0011"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VIII </h2>
<p>It was already about full market time (1) and the halting-place at which
the army was to take up quarters was nearly reached, when Pategyas, a
Persian, a trusty member of Cyrus's personal staff, came galloping up at
full speed on his horse, which was bathed in sweat, and to every one he
met he shouted in Greek and Persian, as fast as he could ejaculate the
words: "The king is advancing with a large army ready for battle." Then
ensued a scene of wild confusion. The Hellenes and all alike were
expecting to be attacked on the instant, and before they could form their
lines. Cyrus sprang from his carriage and donned his corselet; then
leaping on to his charger's back, with the javelins firmly clutched, he
passed the order to the rest, to arm themselves and fall into their
several ranks.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. between 9 and 10 A.M.<br/></p>
<p>The orders were carried out with alacrity; the ranks shaped themselves.
Clearchus held the right wing resting on the Euphrates, Proxenus was next,
and after him the rest, while Menon with his troops held the Hellenic
left. Of the Asiatics, a body of Paphlagonian cavalry, one thousand
strong, were posted beside Clearchus on the right, and with them stood the
Hellenic peltasts. On the left was Ariaeus, Cyrus's second in command, and
the rest of the barbarian host. Cyrus was with his bodyguard of cavalry
about six hundred strong, all armed with corselets like Cyrus, and
cuirasses and helmets; but not so Cyrus: he went into battle with head
unhelmeted (2). So too all the horses with Cyrus wore forehead-pieces and
breast-pieces, and the troopers carried short Hellenic swords.</p>
<p>(2) The MSS. add, "to expose oneself to the risks of war bareheaded<br/>
is, it is said, a practice common to the Persians," which I regard<br/>
as a commentator's note, if not an original marginal note of some<br/>
early editor, possibly of the author himself. The "Cyropaedeia" is<br/>
full of such comments, "pieces justificatives" inserted into the<br/>
text.<br/></p>
<p>It was now mid-day, and the enemy was not yet in sight; but with the
approach of afternoon was seen dust like a white cloud, and after a
considerable interval a black pall as it were spread far and high above
the plain. As they came nearer, very soon was seen here and there a glint
of bronze and spear-points; and the ranks could plainly be distinguished.
On the left were troopers wearing white cuirasses. That is Tissaphernes in
command, they said, and next to these a body of men bearing
wicker-shields, and next again heavy-armed infantry, with long wooden
shields reaching to the feet. These were the Egyptians, they said, and
then other cavalry, other bowmen; all were in national divisions, each
nation marching in densely-crowded squares. And all along their front was
a line of chariots at considerable intervals from one another—the
famous scythe-chariots, as they were named—having their scythes
fitted to the axle-trees and stretching out slantwise, while others
protruded under the chariot-seats, facing the ground, so as to cut through
all they encountered. The design was to let them dash full speed into the
ranks of the Hellenes and cut them through.</p>
<p>Curiously enough the anticipation of Cyrus, when at the council of war he
admonished the Hellenes not to mind the shouting of the Asiatics, was not
justified. Instead of shouting, they came on in deep silence, softly and
slowly, with even tread. At this instant, Cyrus, riding past in person,
accompanied by Pigres, his interpreter, and three or four others, called
aloud to Clearchus to advance against the enemy's centre, for there the
king was to be found: "And if we strike home at this point," he added,
"our work is finished." Clearchus, though he could see the compact body at
the centre, and had been told by Cyrus that the king lay outside the
Hellenic left (for, owing to numerical superiority, the king, while
holding his own centre, could well overlap Cyrus's extreme left), still
hesitated to draw off his right wing from the river, for fear of being
turned on both flanks; and he simply replied, assuring Cyrus that he would
take care all went well.</p>
<p>At this time the barbarian army was evenly advancing, and the Hellenic
division was still riveted to the spot, completing its formation as the
various contingents came up. Cyrus, riding past at some distance from the
lines, glanced his eye first in one direction and then in the other, so as
to take a complete survey of friends and foes; when Xenophon the Athenian,
seeing him, rode up from the Hellenic quarter to meet him, asking him
whether he had any orders to give. Cyrus, pulling up his horse, begged him
to make the announcement generally known that the omens from the victims,
internal and external alike, were good (3). While he was still speaking,
he heard a confused murmur passing through the ranks, and asked what it
meant. The other replied that it was the watchword being passed down for
the second time. Cyrus wondered who had given the order, and asked what
the watchword was. On being told it was "Zeus our Saviour and Victory," he
replied, "I accept it; so let it be," and with that remark rode away to
his own position. And now the two battle lines were no more than three or
four furlongs apart, when the Hellenes began chanting the paean, and at
the same time advanced against the enemy.</p>
<p>(3) I.e. the omens from inspecting the innards of the victims, and the<br/>
omens from the acts and movements of the victims.<br/></p>
<p>But with the forward movement a certain portion of the line curved onwards
in advance, with wave-like sinuosity, and the portion left behind
quickened to a run; and simultaneously a thrilling cry burst from all
lips, like that in honour of the war-god—eleleu! eleleu! and the
running became general. Some say they clashed their shields and spears,
thereby causing terror to the horses (4); and before they had got within
arrowshot the barbarians swerved and took to flight. And now the Hellenes
gave chase with might and main, checked only by shouts to one another not
to race, but to keep their ranks. The enemy's chariots, reft of their
charioteers, swept onwards, some through the enemy themselves, others past
the Hellenes. They, as they saw them coming, opened a gap and let them
pass. One fellow, like some dumbfoundered mortal on a racecourse, was
caught by the heels, but even he, they said, received no hurt, nor indeed,
with the single exception of some one on the left wing who was said to
have been wounded by an arrow, did any Hellene in this battle suffer a
single hurt.</p>
<p>(4) Some critics regard this sentence as an editor's or commentator's<br/>
note.<br/></p>
<p>Cyrus, seeing the Hellene's conquering, as far as they at any rate were
concerned, and in hot pursuit, was well content; but in spite of his joy
and the salutations offered him at that moment by those about him, as
though he were already king, he was not led away to join in the pursuit,
but keeping his squadron of six hundred horsemen in cloe order, waited and
watched to see what the king himself would do. The king, he knew, held the
centre of the Persian army. Indeed it is the fashion for the Asiatic
monarch to occupy that position during action, for this twofold reason: he
holds the safest place, with his troops on either side of him, while, if
he has occasion to despatch any necessary rider along the lines, his
troops will receive the message in half the time. The king accordingly on
this occasion held the centre of his army, but for all that, he was
outside Cyrus's left wing; and seeing that no one offered him battle in
front, nor yet the troops in front of him, he wheeled as if to encircle
the enemy. It was then that Cyrus, in apprehension lest the king might get
round to the rear and cut to pieces the Hellenic body, charged to meet
him. Attacking with his six hundred, he mastered the line of troops in
front of the king, and put to flight the six thousand, cutting down, as is
said, with his own hand their general, Artagerses.</p>
<p>But as soon as the rout commenced, Cyrus's own six hundred themselves, in
the ardour of pursuit, were scattered, with the exception of a handful who
were left with Cyrus himself—chiefly his table companions,
so-called. Left alone with these, he caught sight of the king, and the
close throng about him. Unable longer to contain himself, with a cry, "I
see the man," he rushed at him and dealt a blow at his chest, wounding him
through the corselet. This, according to the statement of Ctesias the
surgeon (5), who further states that he himself healed the wound. As Cyrus
delivered the blow, some one struck him with a javelin under the eye
severely; and in the struggle which then ensued between the king and Cyrus
and those about them to protect one or other, we have the statement of
Ctesias as to the number slain on the king's side, for he was by his side.
On the other, Cyrus himself fell, and eight of his bravest companions lay
on the top of him. The story says that Artapes, the trustiest among his
wand-wearers, when he saw that Cyrus had fallen to the ground, leapt from
his horse and threw his arms about him. Then, as one account says, the
king bade one slay him as a worthy victim to his brother: others say that
Artapates drew his scimitar and slew himself by his own hand. A golden
scimitar it is true, he had; he wore also a collar and bracelets and the
other ornaments such as the noblest Persians wear; for his kindliness and
fidelity had won him honours at the hands of Cyrus.</p>
<p>(5) "Ctesias, the son of Ctesiochus, was a physician of Cnidos.<br/>
Seventeen years of his life were passed at the court of Persia,<br/>
fourteen in the service of Darios, three in that of Artaxerxes; he<br/>
returned to Greece in 398 B.C.," and "was employed by Artaxerxes<br/>
in diplomatic services." See Mure; also Ch. Muller, for his life<br/>
and works. He wrote (1) a history on Persian affairs in three<br/>
parts—Assyrian, Median, Persian—with a chapter "On Tributes;"<br/>
(2) a history of Indian affairs (written in the vein of Sir John<br/>
Maundeville, Kt.); (3) a Periplus; (4) a treatise on Mountains;<br/>
(5) a treatise on Rivers.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0012" id="link2H_4_0012"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IX </h2>
<p>So died Cyrus; a man the kingliest (1) and most worthy to rule of all the
Persians who have lived since the elder Cyrus: according to the concurrent
testimony of all who are reputed to have known him intimately. To begin
from the beginning, when still a boy, and whilst being brought up with his
brother and the other lads, his unrivalled excellence was recognised. For
the sons of the noblest Persians, it must be known, are brought up, one
and all, at the king's portals. Here lessons of sobriety and self-control
may largely be laid to heart, while there is nothing base or ugly for eye
or ear to feed upon. There is the daily spectacle ever before the boys of
some receiving honour from the king, and again of others receiving
dishonour; and the tale of all this is in their ears, so that from
earliest boyhood they learn how to rule and to be ruled.</p>
<p>(1) The character now to be drawn is afterwards elaborated into the<br/>
Cyrus of the Cyropaedeia.<br/></p>
<p>In this courtly training Cyrus earned a double reputation; first he was
held to be a paragon of modesty among his fellows, rendering an obedience
to his elders which exceeded that of many of his own inferiors; and next
he bore away the palm for skill in horsemanship and for love of the animal
itself. Nor less in matters of war, in the use of the bow and the javelin,
was he held by men in general to be at once the aptest of learners and the
most eager practiser. As soon as his age permitted, the same pre-eminence
showed itself in his fondness for the chase, not without a certain
appetite for perilous adventure in facing the wild beasts themselves. Once
a bear made a furious rush at him (2), and without wincing he grappled
with her, and was pulled from his horse, receiving wounds the scars of
which were visible through life; but in the end he slew the creature, nor
did he forget him who first came to his aid, but made him enviable in the
eyes of many.</p>
<p>(2) The elder Cyrus, when a boy, kills not a bear but a boar.<br/></p>
<p>After he had been sent down by his father to be satrap of Lydia and Great
Phrygia and Cappadocia, and had been appointed general of the forces,
whose business it is to muster in the plain of the Castolus, nothing was
more noticeable in his conduct than the importance which he attached to
the faithful fulfilment of every treaty or compact or undertaking entered
into with others. He would tell no lies to any one. Thus doubtless it was
that he won the confidence alike of individuals and of the communities
entrusted to his care; or in case of hostility, a treaty made with Cyrus
was a guarantee sufficient to the combatant that he would suffer nothing
contrary to its terms. Therefore, in the war with Tissaphernes, all the
states of their own accord chose Cyrus in lieu of Tissaphernes, except
only the men of Miletus, and these were only alienated through fear of
him, because he refused to abandon their exiled citizens; and his deeds
and words bore emphatic witness to his principle: even if they were
weakened in number or in fortune, he would never abandon those who had
once become his friends.</p>
<p>He made no secret of his endeavour to outdo his friends and his foes alike
in reciprocity of conduct. The prayer has been attributed to him, "God
grant I may live along enough to recompense my friends and requite my foes
with a strong arm." However this may be, no one, at least in our days,
ever drew together so ardent a following of friends, eager to lay at his
feet their money, their cities, their own lives and persons; nor is it to
be inferred from this that he suffered the malefactor and the wrongdoer to
laugh him to scorn; on the contrary, these he punished most unflinchingly.
It was no rare sight to see on the well-trodden highways, men who had
forfeited hand or foot or eye; the result being that throughout the
satrapy of Cyrus any one, Hellene or barbarian, provided he were innocent,
might fearlessly travel wherever he pleased, and take with him whatever he
felt disposed. However, as all allowed, it was for the brave in war that
he reserved especial honour. To take the first instance to hand, he had a
war with the Pisidians and Mysians. Being himself at the head of an
expedition into those territories, he could observe those who voluntarily
encountered risks; these he made rulers of the territory which he
subjected, and afterwards honoured them with other gifts. So that, if the
good and brave were set on a pinnacle of fortune, cowards were recognised
as their natural slaves; and so it befell that Cyrus never had lack of
volunteers in any service of danger, whenever it was expected that his eye
would be upon them.</p>
<p>So again, wherever he might discover any one ready to distinguish himself
in the service of uprightness, his delight was to make this man richer
than those who seek for gain by unfair means. On the same principle, his
own administration was in all respects uprightly conducted, and, in
particular, he secured the services of an army worthy of the name.
Generals, and subalterns alike, came to him from across the seas, not
merely to make money, but because they saw that loyalty to Cyrus was a
more profitable investment than so many pounds a month. Let any man
whatsoever render him willing service, such enthusiasm was sure to win its
reward. And so Cyrus could always command the service of the best
assistants, it was said, whatever the work might be.</p>
<p>Or if he saw any skilful and just steward who furnished well the country
over which he ruled, and created revenues, so far from robbing him at any
time, to him who had, he delighted to give more. So that toil was a
pleasure, and gains were amassed with confidence, and least of all from
Cyrus would a man conceal the amount of his possessions, seeing that he
showed no jealousy of wealth openly avowed, but his endeavour was rather
to turn to account the riches of those who kept them secret. Towards the
friends he had made, whose kindliness he knew, or whose fitness as
fellow-workers with himself, in aught which he might wish to carry out, he
had tested, he showed himself in turn an adept in the arts of courtesy.
Just in proportion as he felt the need of this friend or that to help him,
so he tried to help each of them in return in whatever seemed to be their
heart's desire.</p>
<p>Many were the gifts bestowed on him, for many and diverse reasons; no one
man, perhaps, ever received more; no one, certainly, was ever more ready
to bestow them upon others, with an eye ever to the taste of each, so as
to gratify what he saw to be the individual requirement. Many of these
presents were sent to him to serve as personal adornments of the body or
for battle; and as touching these he would say, "How am I to deck myself
out in all these? to my mind a man's chief ornament is the adornment of
nobly-adorned friends." Indeed, that he should triumph over his friends in
the great matters of welldoing is not surprising, seeing that he was much
more powerful than they, but that he should go beyond them in minute
attentions, and in an eager desire to give pleasure, seems to me, I must
confess, more admirable. Frequently when he had tasted some specially
excellent wine, he would send the half remaining flagon to some friend
with a message to say: "Cyrus says, this is the best wine he has tasted
for a long time, that is his excuse for sending it to you. He hopes you
will drink it up to-day with a choice party of friends." Or, perhaps, he
would send the remainder of a dish of geese, half loaves of bread, and so
forth, the bearer being instructed to say: "This is Cyrus's favourite
dish, he hopes you will taste it yourself." Or, perhaps, there was a great
dearth of provender, when, through the number of his servants and his own
careful forethought, he was enabled to get supplies for himself; at such
times he would send to his friends in different parts, bidding them feed
their horses on his hay, since it would not do for the horses that carried
his friends to go starving. Then, on any long march or expedition, where
the crowd of lookers-on would be large, he would call his friends to him
and entertain them with serious talk, as much as to say, "These I delight
to honour."</p>
<p>So that, for myself, and from all that I can hear, I should be disposed to
say that no one, Greek or barbarian, was ever so beloved. In proof of
this, I may cite the fact that, though Cyrus was the king's vassal and
slave, no one ever forsook him to join his master, if I may except the
attempt of Orontas, which was abortive. That man, indeed, had to learn
that Cyrus was closer to the heart of him on whose fidelity he relied than
he himself was. On the other hand, many a man revolted from the king to
Cyrus, after they went to war with one another; nor were these nobodies,
but rather persons high in the king's affection; yet for all that, they
believed that their virtues would obtain a reward more adequate from Cyrus
than from the king. Another great proof at once of his own worth and of
his capacity rightly to discern all loyal, loving and firm friendship is
afforded by an incident which belongs to the last moment of his life. He
was slain, but fighting for his life beside him fell also every one of his
faithful bodyguard of friends and table-companions, with the sole
exception of Ariaeus, who was in command of the cavalry on the left, and
he no sooner perceived the fall of Cyrus than he betook himself to flight,
with the whole body of troops under his lead.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0013" id="link2H_4_0013"></SPAN></p>
<h2> X </h2>
<p>Then the head of Cyrus and his right hand were severed from the body. But
the king and those about him pursued and fell upon the Cyreian camp, and
the troops of Ariaeus no longer stood their ground, but fled through their
own camp back to the halting-place of the night before—a distance of
four parasangs, it was said. So the king and those with him fell to
ravaging right and left, and amongst other spoil he captured the Phocaean
woman, who was a concubine of Cyrus, witty and beautiful, if fame speaks
correctly. The Milesian, who was the younger, was also seized by some of
the king's men; but, letting go her outer garment, she made good her
escape to the Hellenes, who had been left among the camp followers on
guard. These fell at once into line and put to the sword many of the
pillagers, though they lost some men themselves; they stuck to the place
and succeeded in saving not only that lady, but all else, whether chattels
or human beings, which lay within their reach.</p>
<p>At this point the king and the Hellenes were something like three miles
apart; the one set were pursuing their opponents just as if their conquest
had been general; the others were pillaging as merrily as if their victory
were already universal. But when the Hellenes learnt that the king and his
troops were in the baggage camp; and the king, on his side, was informed
by Tissaphernes that the Hellenes were victorious in their quarter of the
field, and had gone forward in pursuit, the effect was instantaneous. The
king massed his troops and formed into line. Clearchus summoned Proxenus,
who was next him, and debated whether to send a detachment or to go in a
body to the camp to save it.</p>
<p>Meanwhile the king was seen again advancing, as it seemed, from the rear;
and the Hellenes, turning right about, prepared to receive his attack then
and there. But instead of advancing upon them at that point, he drew off,
following the line by which he had passed earlier in the day, outside the
left wing of his opponent, and so picked up in his passage those who had
deserted to the Hellenes during the battle, as also Tissaphernes and his
division. The latter had not fled in the first shock of the encounter; he
had charged parallel to the line of the Euphrates into the Greek peltasts,
and through them. But charge as he might, he did not lay low a single man.
On the contrary, the Hellenes made a gap to let them through, hacking them
with their swords and hurling their javelins as they passed. Episthenes of
Amphipolis was in command of the peltasts, and he showed himself a
sensible man, it was said. Thus it was that Tissaphernes, having got
through haphazard, with rather the worst of it, failed to wheel round and
return the way he came, but reaching the camp of the Hellenes, there fell
in with the king; and falling into order again, the two divisions advanced
side by side.</p>
<p>When they were parallel with the (original) left wing of the Hellenes,
fear seized the latter lest they might take them in flank and enfold them
on both sides and cut them down. In this apprehension they determined to
extend their line and place the river on their rear. But while they
deliberated, the king passed by and ranged his troops in line to meet
them, in exactly the same position in which he had advanced to offer
battle at the commencement of the engagement. The Hellenes, now seeing
them in close proximity and in battle order, once again raised the paean
and began the attack with still greater enthusiasm than before: and once
again the barbarians did not wait to receive them, but took to flight,
even at a greater distance than before. The Hellenes pressed the pursuit
until they reached a certain village, where they halted, for above the
village rose a mound, on which the king and his party rallied and
reformed; they had no infantry any longer, but the crest was crowded with
cavalry, so that it was impossible to discover what was happening. They
did see, they said, the royal standard, a kind of golden eagle, with wings
extended, perched on a bar of wood and raised upon a lance.</p>
<p>But as soon as the Hellenes again moved onwards, the hostile cavalry at
once left the hillock—not in a body any longer, but in fragments—some
streaming from one side, some from another; and the crest was gradually
stripped of its occupants, till at last the company was gone. Accordingly,
Clearchus did not ascend the crest, but posting his army at its base, he
sent Lycius of Syracuse and another to the summit, with orders to inspect
the condition of things on the other side, and to report results. Lycius
galloped up and investigated, bringing back news that they were fleeing
might and main. Almost at that instant the sun sank beneath the horizon.
There the Hellenes halted; they grounded arms and rested, marvelling the
while that Cyrus was not anywhere to be seen, and that no messenger had
come from him. For they were in complete ignorance of his death, and
conjectured that either he had gone off in pursuit, or had pushed forward
to occupy some point. Left to themselves, they now deliberated, whether
they should stay where they were and have the baggage train brought up, or
should return to camp. They resolved to return, and about supper time
reached the tents. Such was the conclusion of this day.</p>
<p>They found the larger portion of their property pillaged, eatables and
drinkables alike, not excepting the wagons laden with corn and wine, which
Cyrus had prepared in case of some extreme need overtaking the expedition,
to divide among the Hellenes. There were four hundred of these wagons, it
was said, and these had now been ransacked by the king and his men; so
that the greater number of the Hellenes went supperless, having already
gone without their breakfasts, since the king had appeared before the
usual halt for breakfast. Accordingly, in no better plight than this they
passed the night.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0014" id="link2H_4_0014"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK II </h2>
<p>(In the previous book will be found a full account of the<br/>
method by which Cyrus collected a body of Greeks when<br/>
meditating an expedition against his brother Artaxerxes; as<br/>
also of various occurrences on the march up; of the battle<br/>
itself, and of the death of Cyrus; and lastly, a description<br/>
of the arrival of the Hellenes in camp after the battle, and<br/>
as to how they betook themselves to rest, none suspecting<br/>
but what they were altogether victorious and that Cyrus<br/>
lived.)<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0015" id="link2H_4_0015"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>With the break of day the generals met, and were surprised that Cyrus
should not have appeared himself, or at any rate have sent some one to
tell them what to do. Accordingly, they resolved to put what they had
together, to get under arms, and to push forward until they effected
junction with Cyrus. Just as they were on the point of starting, with the
rising sun came Procles the ruler of Teuthrania. He was a descendant of
Damaratus (1) the Laconian, and with him also came Glus the son of Tamos.
These two told them, first, that Cyrus was dead; next, that Ariaeus had
retreated with the rest of the barbarians to the halting-place whence they
had started at dawn on the previous day; and wished to inform them that,
if they were minded to come, he would wait for this one day, but on the
morrow he should return home again to Ionia, whence he came.</p>
<p>(1) The Spartan king who was deposed in B.C. 491, whereupon he fled to<br/>
King Darius, and settled in south-western Mysia. See Herod. vi.<br/>
50, 61-70. We shall hear more of his descendant, Procles, the<br/>
ruler of Teuthrania, in the last chapter of this work.<br/></p>
<p>When they heard these tidings, the generals were sorely distressed; so too
were the rest of the Hellenes when they were informed of it. Then
Clearchus spoke as follows: "Would that Cyrus were yet alive! But since he
is dead, take back this answer to Ariaeus, that we, at any rate, have
conquered the king; and, as you yourselves may see, there is not a man
left in the field to meet us. Indeed, had you not arrived, we should ere
this have begun our march upon the king. Now, we can promise to Ariaeus
that, if he will join us here, we will place him on the king's throne.
Surely to those who conquer empire pertains." With these words he sent
back the messengers and with them he sent Cheirisophus the Laconian, and
Menon the Thessalian. That was what Menon himself wished, being, as he
was, a friend and intimate of Ariaeus, and bound by mutual ties of
hospitality. So these set off, and Clearchus waited for them.</p>
<p>The soldiers furnished themselves with food (and drink) as best they might—falling
back on the baggage animals, and cutting up oxen and asses. There was no
lack of firewood; they need only step forward a few paces from the line
where the battle was fought, and they would find arrows to hand in
abundance, which the Hellenes had forced the deserters from the king to
throw away. There were arrows and wicker shields also, and the huge wooden
shields of the Egyptians. There were many targets also, and empty wagons
left to be carried off. Here was a store which they were not slow to make
use of to cook their meat and serve their meals that day.</p>
<p>It was now about full market hour (2) when heralds from the king and
Tissaphernes arrived. These were barbarians with one exception. This was a
certain Phalinus, a Hellene who lived at the court of Tissaphernes, and
was held in high esteem. He gave himself out to be a connoisseur of
tactics and the art of fighting with heavy arms. These were the men who
now came up, and having summoned the generals of the Hellenes, they
delivered themselves of the following message: "The great king having won
the victory and slain Cyrus, bids the Hellenes to surrender their arms; to
betake themselves to the gates of the king's palace, and there obtain for
themselves what terms they can." That was what the heralds said, and the
Hellenes listened with heavy hearts; but Clearchus spoke, and his words
were few; "Conquerors do not, as a rule, give up their arms"; then turning
to the others he added, "I leave it to you, my fellow-generals, to make
the best and noblest answer, that ye may, to these gentlemen. I will
rejoin you presently." At the moment an official had summoned him to come
and look at the entrails which had been taken out, for, as it chanced, he
was engaged in sacrificing. As soon as he was gone, Cleanor the Arcadian,
by right of seniority, answered: "They would sooner die than give up their
arms." Then Proxenus the Theban said: "For my part, I marvel if the king
demands our arms as our master, or for the sake of friendship merely, as
presents. If as our master, why need he ask for them rather than come and
take them? But if he would fain wheedle us out of them by fine speeches,
he should tell us what the soldiers will receive in turn for such
kindness." In answer to him Phalinus said: "The king claims to have
conquered, because he has put Cyrus to death; and who is there now to
claim the kingdom as against himself? He further flatters himself that you
also are in his power, since he holds you in the heart of his country,
hemmed in by impassable rivers; and he can at any moment bring against you
a multitude so vast that even if leave were given to rise and slay you
could not kill them." After him Theopompus (3) the Athenian spoke.
"Phalinus," he said, "at this instant, as you yourself can see, we have
nothing left but our arms and our valour. If we keep the former we imagine
we can make use of the latter; but if we deliver up our arms we shall
presently be robbed of our lives. Do not suppose then that we are going to
give up to you the only good things which we possess. We prefer to keep
them; and by their help we will do battle with you for the good things
which are yours." Phalinus laughed when he heard those words, and said:
"Spoken like a philosopher, my fine young man, and very pretty reasoning
too; yet, let me tell you, your wits are somewhat scattered if you imagine
that your valour will get the better of the king's power." There were one
or two others, it was said, who with a touch of weakness in their tone or
argument, made answer: "They had proved good and trusty friends to Cyrus,
and the king might find them no less valuable. If he liked to be friends
with them, he might turn them to any use that pleased his fancy, say for a
campaign against Egypt. Their arms were at his service; they would help to
lay that country at his feet."</p>
<p>(2) 10 A.M.<br/>
<br/>
(3) So the best MSS. Others read "Xenophon," which Kruger maintains to<br/>
be the true reading. He suggests that "Theopompus" may have crept<br/>
into the text from a marginal note of a scholiast, "Theopompus"<br/>
(the historian) "gives the remark to Proxenus."<br/></p>
<p>Just then Clearchus returned, and wished to know what answer they had
given. The words were barely out of his mouth before Phalinus
interrupting, answered: "As for your friends here, one says one thing and
one another; will you please give us your opinion"; and he replied: "The
sight of you, Phalinus, caused me much pleasure; and not only me, but all
of us, I feel sure; for you are a Hellene even as we are—every one
of us whom you see before you. In our present plight we would like to take
you into our counsel as to what we had better do touching your proposals.
I beg you then solemnly, in the sight of heaven—do you tender us
such advice as you shall deem best and worthiest, and such as shall bring
you honour of after time, when it will be said of you how once on a time
Phalinus was sent by the great king to bid certain Hellenes yield up their
arms, and when they had taken him into their counsel, he gave them such
and such advice. You know that whatever advice you do give us cannot fail
to be reported in Hellas."</p>
<p>Clearchus threw out these leading remarks in hopes that this man, who was
the ambassador from the king, might himself be led to advise them not to
give up their arms, in which case the Hellenes would be still more
sanguine and hopeful. But, contrary to his expectation, Phalinus turned
round and said: "I say that if you have one chance, one hope in ten
thousand to wage a war with the king successfully, do not give up your
arms. That is my advice. If, however, you have no chance of escape without
the king's consent, then I say save yourselves in the only way you can."
And Clearchus answered: "So, then, that is your deliberate view? Well,
this is our answer, take it back. We conceive that in either case, whether
we are expected to be friends with the king, we shall be worth more as
friends if we keep our arms than if we yield them to another; or whether
we are to go to war, we shall fight better with them than without." And
Phalinus said: "That answer we will repeat; but the king bade me tell you
this besides, 'Whilst you remain here there is truce; but one step forward
or one step back, the truce ends; there is war.' Will you then please
inform us as to that point also? Are you minded to stop and keep truce, or
is there to be war? What answer shall I take from you?" And Clearchus
replied: "Pray answer that we hold precisely the same views on this point
as the king."—"How say you the same views?" asked Phalinus.
Clearchus made answer: "As long as we stay here there is truce, but a step
forward or a step backward, the truce ends; there is war." The other again
asked: "Peace or war, what answer shall I make?" Clearchus returned answer
once again in the same words: "Truce if we stop, but if we move forwards
or backwards war." But what he was minded really to do, that he refused to
make further manifest.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0016" id="link2H_4_0016"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>Phalinus and those that were with him turned and went. But the messengers
from Ariaeus, Procles and Cheirisophus came back. As to Menon, he stayed
behind with Ariaeus, They brought back this answer from Ariaeus: "'There
are many Persians,' he says, 'better than himself who will not suffer him
to sit upon the king's throne; but if you are minded to go back with him,
you must join him this very night, otherwise he will set off himself
to-morrow on the homeward route.'" And Clearchus said: "It had best stand
thus between us then. If we come, well and good, be it as you propose; but
if we do not come, do whatsoever you think most conducive to your
interests." And so he kept these also in the dark as to his real
intention.</p>
<p>After this, when the sun was already sinking, he summoned the generals and
officers, and made the following statement: "Sirs, I sacrificed and found
the victims unfavourable to an advance against the king. After all, it is
not so surprising perhaps, for, as I now learn, between us and the king
flows the river Tigris, navigable for big vessels, and we could not
possibly cross it without boats, and boats we have none. On the other
hand, to stop here is out of the question, for there is no possibility of
getting provisions. However, the victims were quite agreeable to us
joining the friends of Cyrus. This is what we must do then. Let each go
away and sup on whatever he has. At the first sound of the bugle to turn
in, get kit and baggage together; at the second signal, place them on the
baggage animals; and at the third, fall in and follow the lead, with the
baggage animals on the inside protected by the river, and the troops
outside." After hearing the orders, the generals and officers retired, and
did as they were bid; and for the future Clearchus led, and the rest
followed in obedience to his orders, not that they had expressly chosen
him, but they saw that he alone had the sense and wisdom requisite in a
general, while the rest were inexperienced (1).</p>
<p>(1) The MSS. add the words, "The total distance of the route, taking<br/>
Ephesus in Ionia as the starting point up to the field of battle,<br/>
consisted of 93 stages, 535 parasangs, or 16,050 furlongs; from<br/>
the battle-field to Babylon (reckoned a three days' journey) would<br/>
have been another 360 stades," which may well be an editor's or<br/>
commentator's marginal note.<br/></p>
<p>Here, under cover of the darkness which descended, the Thracian
Miltocythes, with forty horsemen and three hundred Thracian infantry,
deserted to the king; but the rest of the troops—Clearchus leading
and the rest following in accordance with the orders promulgated—took
their departure, and about midnight reached their first stage, having come
up with Ariaeus and his army. They grounded arms just as they stood in
rank, and the generals and officers of the Hellenes met in the tent of
Ariaeus. There they exchanged oaths—the Hellenes on the one side and
Ariaeus with his principal officers on the other—not to betray one
another, but to be true to each other as allies. The Asiatics further
solemnly pledged themselves by oath to lead the way without treachery. The
oaths were ratified by the sacrifice of a bull, a wolf (2), a boar, and a
ram over a shield. The Hellenes dipped a sword, the barbarians a lance,
into the blood of the victims.</p>
<p>(2) It is a question whether the words "a wolf" ought not to be<br/>
omitted.<br/></p>
<p>As soon as the pledge was taken, Clearchus spoke: "And now, Ariaeus," he
said, "since you and we have one expedition in prospect, will you tell us
what you think about the route; shall we return the way we came, or have
you devised a better?" He answered: "To return the same way is to perish
to a man by hunger; for at this moment we have no provisions whatsoever.
During the seventeen last stages, even on our way hither, we could extract
nothing from the country; or, if there was now and again anything, we
passed over and utterly consumed it. At this time our project is to take
another and a longer journey certainly, but we shall not be in straits for
provisions. The earliest stages must be very long, as long as we can make
them; the object is to put as large a space as possible between us and the
royal army; once we are two or three days' journey off, the danger is
over. The king will never overtake us. With a small army he will not dare
to dog our heels, and with a vast equipment he will lack the power to
march quickly. Perhaps he, too, may even find a scarcity of provisions.
There," said he, "you asked for my opinion, see, I have given it."</p>
<p>Here was a plan of the campaign, which was equivalent to a stampede:
helter-skelter they were to run away, or get into hiding somehow; but
fortune proved a better general. For as soon as it was day they
recommenced the journey, keeping the sun on their right, and calculating
that with the westering rays they would have reached villages in the
territory of Babylonia, and in this hope they were not deceived. While it
was yet afternoon, they thought they caught sight of some of the enemy's
cavalry; and those of the Hellenes who were not in rank ran to their
ranks; and Ariaeus, who was riding in a wagon to nurse a wound, got down
and donned his cuirass, the rest of his party following his example.
Whilst they were arming themselves, the scouts, who had been sent forward,
came back with the information that they were not cavalry but baggage
animals grazing. It was at once clear to all that they must be somewhere
in the neighbourhood of the king's encampment. Smoke could actually be
seen rising, evidently from villages not far ahead. Clearchus hesitated to
advance upon the enemy, knowing that the troops were tired and hungry; and
indeed it was already late. On the other hand he had no mind either to
swerve from his route—guarding against any appearance of flight.
Accordingly he marched straight as an arrow, and with sunset entered the
nearest villages with his vanguard and took up quarters.</p>
<p>These villages had been thoroughly sacked and dismantled by the royal army—down
to the very woodwork and furniture of the houses. Still, the vanguard
contrived to take up their quarters in some sort of fashion; but the rear
division, coming up in the dark, had to bivouac as best they could, one
detachment after another; and a great noise they made, with hue and cry to
one another, so that the enemy could hear them; and those in their
immediate proximity actually took to their heels, left their quarters, and
decamped, as was plain enough next morning, when not a beast was to be
seen, nor sign of camp or wreath of smoke anywhere in the neighbourhood.
The king, as it would appear, was himself quite taken aback by the advent
of the army; as he fully showed by his proceedings next day.</p>
<p>During the progress of this night the Hellenes had their turn of scare—a
panic seized them, and there was a noise and clatter, hardly to be
explained except by the visitation of some sudden terror. But Clearchus
had with him the Eleian Tolmides, the best herald of his time; him he
ordered to proclaim silence, and then to give out this proclamation of the
generals: "Whoever will give any information as to who let an ass into the
camp shall receive a talent of silver in reward." On hearing this
proclamation the soldiers made up their minds that their fear was
baseless, and their generals safe and sound. At break of day Clearchus
gave the order to the Hellenes to get under arms in line of battle, and
take up exactly the same position as they held on the day of the battle.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0017" id="link2H_4_0017"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>And now comes the proof of what I stated above—that the king was
utterly taken aback by the sudden apparition of the army; only the day
before, he had sent and demanded the surrender of their arms—and
now, with the rising sun, came heralds sent by him to arrange a truce.
These, having reached the advanced guard, asked for the generals. The
guard reported their arrival; and Clearchus, who was busy inspecting the
ranks, sent back word to the heralds that they must await his leisure.
Having carefully arranged the troops so that from every side they might
present the appearance of a compact battle line without a single unarmed
man in sight, he summoned the ambassadors, and himself went forward to
meet them with the soldiers, who for choice accoutrement and noble aspect
were the flower of his force; a course which he had invited the other
generals also to adopt.</p>
<p>And now, being face to face with the ambassadors, he questioned them as to
what their wishes were. They replied that they had come to arrange a
truce, and were persons competent to carry proposals from the king to the
Hellenes and from the Hellenes to the king. He returned answer to them:
"Take back word then to your master, that we need a battle first, for we
have had no breakfast; and he will be a brave man who will dare mention
the word 'truce' to Hellenes without providing them with breakfast." With
this message the heralds rode off, but were back again in no time, which
was a proof that the king, or some one appointed by him to transact the
business, was hard by. They reported that "the message seemed reasonable
to the king; they had now come bringing guides who, if a truce were
arranged, would conduct them where they would get provisions." Clearchus
inquired "whether the truce was offered to the individual men merely as
they went and came, or to all alike." "To all," they replied, "until the
king receives your final answer." When they had so spoken, Clearchus,
having removed the ambassadors, held a council; and it was resolved to
make a truce at once, and then quietly to go and secure provisions; and
Clearchus said: "I agree to the resolution; still I do not propose to
announce it at once, but to wile away time till the ambassadors begin to
fear that we have decided against the truce; though I suspect," he added,
"the same fear will be operative on the minds of our soldiers also." As
soon as the right moment seemed to have arrived, he delivered his answer
in favour of the truce, and bade the ambassadors at once conduct them to
the provisions.</p>
<p>So these led the way; and Clearchus, without relaxing precaution, in spite
of having secured a truce, marched after them with his army in line and
himself in command of the rearguard. Over and over again they encountered
trenches and conduits so full of water that they could not be crossed
without bridges; but they contrived well enough for these by means of
trunks of palm trees which had fallen, or which they cut down for the
occasion. And here Clearchus's system of superintendence was a study in
itself; as he stood with a spear in his left hand and a stick in the
other; and when it seemed to him there was any dawdling among the parties
told off to the work, he would pick out the right man and down would come
the stick; nor, at the same time, was he above plunging into the mud and
lending a hand himself, so that every one else was forced for very shame
to display equal alacrity. The men told off for the business were the men
of thirty years of age; but even the elder men, when they saw the energy
of Clearchus, could not resist lending their aid also. What stimulated the
haste of Clearchus was the suspicion in his mind that these trenches were
not, as a rule, so full of water, since it was not the season to irrigate
the plain; and he fancied that the king had let the water on for the
express purpose of vividly presenting to the Hellenes the many dangers
with which their march was threatened at the very start.</p>
<p>Proceeding on their way they reached some villages, where their guides
indicated to them that they would find provisions. They were found to
contain plenty of corn, and wine made from palm dates, and an acidulated
beverage extracted by boiling from the same fruit. As to the palm nuts or
dates themselves, it was noticeable that the sort which we are accustomed
to see in Hellas were set aside for the domestic servants; those put aside
for the masters are picked specimens, and are simply marvellous for their
beauty and size, looking like great golden lumps of amber; some specimens
they dried and preserved as sweetmeats. Sweet enough they were as an
accompaniment of wine, but apt to give headache. Here, too, for the first
time in their lives, the men tasted the brain (1) of the palm. No one
could help being struck by the beauty of this object, and the peculiarity
of its delicious flavour; but this, like the dried fruits, was exceedingly
apt to give headache. When this cabbage or brain has been removed from the
palm the whole tree withers from top to bottom.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. the cabbage-like crown.<br/></p>
<p>In these villages they remained three days, and a deputation from the
great king arrived—Tissaphernes and the king's brother-in-law and
three other Persians—with a retinue of many slaves. As soon as the
generals of the Hellenes had presented themselves, Tissaphernes opened the
proceedings with the following speech, through the lips of an interpreter:
"Men of Hellas, I am your next-door neighbour in Hellas. Therefore was it
that I, when I saw into what a sea of troubles you were fallen, regarded
it as a godsend, if by any means I might obtain, as a boon from the king,
the privilege of bringing you back in safety to your own country: and
that, I take it, will earn me gratitude from you and all Hellas. In this
determination I preferred my request to the king; I claimed it as a favour
which was fairly my due; for was it not I who first announced to him the
hostile approach of Cyrus? who supported that announcement by the aid I
brought; who alone among the officers confronted with the Hellenes in
battle did not flee, but charged right through and united my troops with
the king inside your camp, where he was arrived, having slain Cyrus; it
was I, lastly, who gave chase to the barbarians under Cyrus, with the help
of those here present with me at this moment, which are also among the
trustiest followers of our lord the king. Now, I counsel you to give a
moderate answer, so that it may be easier for me to carry out my design,
if haply I may obtain from him some good thing on your behalf."</p>
<p>Thereupon the Hellenes retired and took counsel. Then they answered, and
Clearchus was their spokesman: "We neither mustered as a body to make war
against the king, nor was our march conducted with that object. But it was
Cyrus, as you know, who invented many and divers pretexts, that he might
take you off your guard, and transport us hither. Yet, after a while, when
we saw that he was in sore straits, we were ashamed in the sight of God
and man to betray him, whom we had permitted for so long a season to
benefit us. But now that Cyrus is dead, we set up no claim to his kingdom
against the king himself; there is neither person nor thing for the sake
of which we would care to injure the king's country; we would not choose
to kill him if we could, rather we would march straight home, if we were
not molested; but, God helping us, we will retaliate on all who injure us.
On the other hand, if any be found to benefit us, we do not mean to be
outdone in kindly deeds, as far as in us lies."</p>
<p>So he spoke, and Tissaphernes listened and replied: "That answer will I
take back to the king and bring you word from him again. Until I come
again, let the truce continue, and we will furnish you with a market." All
next day he did not come back, and the Hellenes were troubled with
anxieties, but on the third day he arrived with the news that he had
obtained from the king the boon he asked; he was permitted to save the
Hellenes, though there were many gainsayers who argued that it was not
seemly for the king to let those who had marched against him depart in
peace. And at last he said: "You may now, if you like, take pledges from
us, that we will make the countries through which you pass friendly to
you, and will lead you back without treachery into Hellas, and will
furnish you with a market; and wherever you cannot purchase, we will
permit you to take provisions from the district. You, on your side, must
swear that you will march as through a friendly country, without damage—merely
taking food and drink wherever we fail to supply a market—or, if we
afford a market, you shall only obtain provisions by paying for them."
This was agreed to, and oaths and pledges exchanged between them—Tissaphernes
and the king's brother-in-law upon the one side, and the generals and
officers of the Hellenes on the other. After this Tissaphernes said: "And
now I go back to the king; as soon as I have transacted what I have a mind
to, I will come back, ready equipped, to lead you away to Hellas, and to
return myself to my own dominion."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0018" id="link2H_4_0018"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>After these things the Hellenes and Ariaeus waited for Tissaphernes, being
encamped close to one another: for more than twenty days they waited,
during which time there came visitors to Ariaeus, his brother and other
kinsfolk. To those under him came certain other Persians, encouraging them
and bearing pledges to some of them from the king himself—that he
would bear no grudge against them on account of the part they bore in the
expedition against him with Cyrus, or for aught else of the things which
were past. Whilst these overtures were being made, Ariaeus and his friends
gave manifest signs of paying less attention to the Hellenes, so much so
that, if for no other reason, the majority of the latter were not well
pleased, and they came to Clearchus and the other generals, asking what
they were waiting for. "Do we not know full well," they said, "that the
king would give a great deal to destroy us, so that other Hellenes may
take warning and think twice before they march against the king. To-day it
suits his purpose to induce us to stop here, because his army is
scattered; but as soon as he has got together another armament, attack us
most certainly he will. How do we know he is not at this moment digging
away at trenches, or running up walls, to make our path impassable. It is
not to be supposed that he will desire us to return to Hellas with a tale
how a handful of men like ourselves beat the king at his own gates,
laughed him to scorn, and then came home again." Clearchus replied: "I too
am keenly aware of all this; but I reason thus: if we turn our backs now,
they will say, we mean war and are acting contrary to the truce, and then
what follows? First of all, no one will furnish us with a market or means
of providing ourselves with food. Next, we shall have no one to guide us;
moreover, such action on our part will be a signal to Ariaeus to hold
aloof from us, so that not a friend will be left to us; even those who
were formerly our friends will now be numbered with our enemies. What
other river, or rivers, we may find we have to cross, I do not know; but
this we know, to cross the Euphrates in face of resistance is impossible.
You see, in the event of being driven to an engagement, we have no cavalry
to help us, but with the enemy it is the reverse—not only the most,
but the best of his troops are cavalry, so that if we are victorious, we
shall kill no one, but if we are defeated, not a man of us can escape. For
my part, I cannot see why the king, who has so many advantages on his
side, if he desires to destroy us, should swear oaths and tender solemn
pledges merely in order to perjure himself in the sight of heaven, to
render his word worthless and his credit discreditable the wide world
over." These arguments he propounded at length.</p>
<p>Meanwhile Tissaphernes came back, apparently ready to return home; he had
his own force with him, and so had Orontas, who was also present, his. The
latter brought, moreover, his bride with him, the king's daughter, whom he
had just wedded. The journey was now at length fairly commenced.
Tissaphernes led the way, and provided a market. They advanced, and
Ariaeus advanced too, at the head of Cyrus's Asiatic troops, side by side
with Tissaphernes and Orontas, and with these two he also pitched his
camp. The Hellenes, holding them in suspicion, marched separately with the
guides, and they encamped on each occasion a parasang apart, or rather
less; and both parties kept watch upon each other as if they were enemies,
which hardly tended to lull suspicion; and sometimes, whilst foraging for
wood and grass and so forth on the same ground, blows were exchanged,
which occasioned further embitterments. Three stages they had accomplished
ere they reached the wall of Media, as it is called, and passed within it.
It was built of baked bricks laid upon bitumen. It was twenty feet broad
and a hundred feet high, and the length of it was said to be twenty
parasangs. It lies at no great distance from Babylon.</p>
<p>From this point they marched two stages—eight parasangs—and
crossed two canals, the first by a regular bridge, the other spanned by a
bridge of seven boats. These canals issued from the Tigris, and from them
a whole system of minor trenches was cut, leading over the country, large
ones to begin with, and then smaller and smaller, till at last they become
the merest runnels, like those in Hellas used for watering millet fields.
They reached the river Tigris. At this point there was a large and thickly
populated city named Sittace, at a distance of fifteen furlongs from the
river. The Hellenes accordingly encamped by the side of that city, near a
large and beautiful park, which was thick with all sorts of trees.</p>
<p>The Asiatics had crossed the Tigris, but somehow were entirely hidden from
view. After supper, Proxenus and Xenophon were walking in front of the
place d'armes, when a man came up and demanded of the advanced guard where
he could find Proxenus or Clearchus. He did not ask for Menon, and that
too though he came from Ariaeus, who was Menon's friend. As soon as
Proxenus had said: "I am he, whom you seek," the man replied: "I have been
sent by Ariaeus and Artaozus, who have been trusty friends to Cyrus in
past days, and are your well-wishers. They warn you to be on your guard,
in case the barbarians attack you in the night. There is a large body of
troops in the neighbouring park. They also warn you to send and occupy the
bridge over the Tigris, since Tissaphernes is minded to break it down in
the night, if he can, so that you may not cross, but be caught between the
river and the canal." On hearing this they took the man to Clearchus and
acquainted him with his statement. Clearchus, on his side, was much
disturbed, and indeed alarmed at the news. But a young fellow who was
present (1), struck with an idea, suggested that the two statements were
inconsistent; as to the contemplated attack and the proposed destruction
of the bridge. Clearly, the attacking party must either conquer or be
worsted: if they conquer, what need of their breaking down the bridge?
"Why! if there were half a dozen bridges," said he, "we should not be any
the more able to save ourselves by flight—there would be no place to
flee to; but, in the opposite case, suppose we win, with the bridge broken
down, it is they who will not be able to save themselves by flight; and,
what is worse for them, not a single soul will be able to bring them
succour from the other side, for all their numbers, since the bridge will
be broken down."</p>
<p>(1) Possibly Xenophon himself.<br/></p>
<p>Clearchus listened to the reasoning, and then he asked the messenger, "How
large the country between the Tigris and the canal might be?" "A large
district," he replied, "and in it are villages and cities numerous and
large." Then it dawned upon them: the barbarians had sent the man with
subtlety, in fear lest the Hellenes should cut the bridge and occupy the
island territory, with the strong defences of the Tigris on the one side
and of the canal on the other; supplying themselves with provisions from
the country so included, large and rich as it was, with no lack of hands
to till it; in addition to which, a harbour of refuge and asylum would be
found for any one, who was minded to do the king a mischief.</p>
<p>After this they retired to rest in peace, not, however, neglecting to send
a guard to occupy the bridge in spite of all, and there was no attack from
any quarter whatsoever; nor did any of the enemy's people approach the
bridges: so the guards were able to report next morning. But as soon as it
was morning, they proceeded to cross the bridge, which consisted of
thirty-seven vessels, and in so doing they used the utmost precaution
possible; for reports were brought by some of the Hellenes with
Tissaphernes that an attempt was to be made to attack them while crossing.
All this turned out to be false, though it is true that while crossing
they did catch sight of Glus watching, with some others, to see if they
crossed the river; but as soon as he had satisfied himself on that point,
he rode off and was gone.</p>
<p>From the river Tigris they advanced four stages—twenty parasangs—to
the river Physcus, which is a hundred feet broad and spanned by a bridge.
Here lay a large and populous city named Opis, close to which the Hellenes
were encountered by the natural brother of Cyrus and Artaxerxes, who was
leading a large army from Susa and Ecbatana to assist the king. He halted
his troops and watched the Helleens march past. Clearchus led them in
column two abreast: and from time to time the vanguard came to a
standstill, just so often and just so long the effect repeated itself down
to the hindmost man: halt! halt! halt! along the whole line: so that even
to the Hellenes themselves their army seemed enormous; and the Persian was
fairly astonished at the spectacle.</p>
<p>From this place they marched through Media six desert stages—thirty
parasangs—to the villages of Parysatis, Cyrus's and the king's
mother. These Tissaphernes, in mockery of Cyrus, delivered over to the
Hellenes to plunder, except that the folk in them were not to be made
slaves. They contained much corn, cattle, and other property. From this
place they advanced four desert stages—twenty parasangs—keeping
the Tigris on the left. On the first of these stages, on the other side of
the river, lay a large city; it was a well-to-do place named Caenae, from
which the natives used to carry across loaves and cheeses and wine on
rafts made of skins.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0019" id="link2H_4_0019"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>After this they reached the river Zapatas (1), which is four hundred feet
broad, and here they halted three days. During the interval suspicions
were rife, though no act of treachery displayed itself. Clearchus
accordingly resolved to bring to an end these feelings of mistrust, before
they led to war. Consequently, he sent a messenger to the Persian to say
that he desired an interview with him; to which the other readily
consented. As soon as they were met, Clearchus spoke as follows:
"Tissaphernes," he said, "I do not forget that oaths have been exchanged
between us, and right hands shaken, in token that we will abstain from
mutual injury; but I can see that you watch us narrowly, as if we were
foes; and we, seeing this, watch you narrowly in return. But as I fail to
discover, after investigation, that you are endeavouring to do us a
mischief—and I am quite sure that nothing of the sort has ever
entered our heads with regard to you—the best plan seemed to me to
come and talk the matter over with you, so that, if possible, we might
dispel the mutual distrust on either side. For I have known people ere
now, the victims in some cases of calumny, or possibly of mere suspicion,
who in apprehension of one another and eager to deal the first blow, have
committed irreparable wrong against those who neither intended nor so much
as harboured a thought of mischief against them. I have come to you under
a conviction that such misunderstandings may best be put a stop to by
personal intercourse, and I wish to instruct you plainly that you are
wrong in mistrusting us. The first and weightiest reason is that the
oaths, which we took in the sight of heaven, are a barrier to mutual
hostility. I envy not the man whose conscience tells him that he has
disregarded these! For in a war with heaven, by what swiftness of foot can
a man escape?—in what quarter find refuge?—in what darkness
slink away and be hid?—to what strong fortress scale and be out of
reach? Are not all things in all ways subject to the gods? is not their
lordship over all alike outspread? As touching the gods, therefore, and
our oaths, that is how I view this matter. To their safe keeping we
consigned the friendship which we solemnly contracted. But turning to
matters human, you I look upon as our greatest blessing in this present
time. With you every path is plain to us, every river passable, and of
provisions we shall know no stint. But without you, all our way is through
darkness; for we known nothing concerning it, every river will be an
obstacle, each multitude a terror; but, worst terror of all, the vast
wilderness, so full of endless perplexity. Nay, if in a fit of madness we
murdered you, what then? in slaying our benefactor should we not have
challenged to enter the lists against us a more formidable antagonist in
the king himself? Let me tell you, how many high hopes I should rob myself
of, were I to take in hand to do you mischief.</p>
<p>(1) The Greater Zab, which flows into the Tigris near a town now<br/>
called Senn, with which most travellers identify Caenae.<br/></p>
<p>"I coveted the friendship of Cyrus; I believed him to be abler than any
man of his day to benefit those whom he chose; but to-day I look and,
behold, it is you who are in his place; the power which belonged to Cyrus
and his territory are yours now. You have them, and your own satrapy
besides, safe and sound; while the king's power, which was a thorn in the
side of Cyrus, is your support. This being so, it would be madness not to
wish to be your friend. But I will go further and state to you the reasons
of my confidence, that you on your side will desire our friendship. I know
that the Mysians are a cause of trouble to you, and I flatter myself that
with my present force I could render them humbly obedient to you. This
applies to the Pisidians also; and I am told there are many other such
tribes besides. I think I can deal with them all; they shall cease from
being a constant disturbance to your peace and prosperity. Then there are
the Egyptians (2). I know your anger against them to-day is very great.
Nor can I see what better force you will find to help you in chastising
them than this which marches at my back to-day. Again, if you seek the
friendship of any of your neighbours round, there shall be no friend so
great as you; if any one annoys you, with us as your faithful servitors
you shall belord it over him; and such service we will render you, not as
hirelings merely for pay's sake, but for the gratitude which we shall
rightly feel to you, to whom we owe our lives. As I dwell on these
matters, I confess, the idea of your feeling mistrust of us is so
astonishing, that I would give much to discover the name of the man, who
is so clever of speech that he can persuade you that we harbour designs
against you." Clearchus ended, and Tissaphernes responded thus—</p>
<p>(2) We learn from Diodorus Siculus, xiv. 35, that the Egyptians had<br/>
revolted from the Persians towards the end of the reign of Darius.<br/></p>
<p>"I am glad, Clearchus, to listen to your sensible remarks; for with the
sentiments you hold, if you were to devise any mischief against me, it
could only be out of malevolence to yourself. But if you imagine that you,
on your side, have any better reason to mistrust the king and me, than we
you, listen to me in turn, and I will undeceive you. I ask you, does it
seem to you that we lack the means, if we had the will, to destroy you?
have we not horsemen enough, or infantry, or whatever other arm you like,
whereby we may be able to injure you, without risk of suffering in return?
or, possibly, do we seem to you to lack the physical surroundings suitable
for attacking you? Do you not see all these great plains, which you find
it hard enough to traverse even when they are friendly? and all yonder
great mountain chains left for you to cross, which we can at any time
occupy in advance and render impassable? and all those rivers, on whose
banks we can deal craftily by you, checking and controlling and choosing
the right number of you whom we care to fight! Nay, there are some which
you will not be able to cross at all, unless we transport you to the other
side.</p>
<p>"And if at all these points we were worsted, yet 'fire,' as they say, 'is
stronger than the fruit of the field': we can burn it down and call up
famine in arms against you; against which you, for all your bravery, will
never be able to contend. Why then, with all these avenues of attack, this
machinery of war, open to us, not one of which can be turned against
ourselves, why should we select from among them all that method, which
alone in the sight of God is impious and of man abominable? Surely it
belongs to people altogether without resources, who are helplessly
struggling in the toils of fate, and are villains to boot, to seek
accomplishment of their desires by perjury to heaven and faithlessness to
their fellows. We are not so unreasoning, Clearchus, nor so foolish.</p>
<p>"Why, when we had it in our power to destroy you, did we not proceed to do
it? Know well that the cause of this was nothing less than my passion to
prove myself faithful to the Hellenes, and that, as Cyrus went up, relying
on a foreign force attracted by payment, I in turn might go down strong in
the same through service rendered. Various ways in which you Hellenes may
be useful to me you yourself have mentioned, but there is one still
greater. It is the great king's privilege alone to wear the tiara upright
upon his head, yet in your presence it may be given to another mortal to
wear it upright, here, upon his heart."</p>
<p>Throughout this speech he seemed to Clearchus to be speaking the truth,
and he rejoined: "Then are not those worthy of the worst penalties who, in
spite of all that exists to cement our friendship, endeavour by slander to
make us enemies?" "Even so," replied Tissaphernes, "and if your generals
and captains care to come in some open and public way, I will name to you
those who tell me that you are plotting against me and the army under me."
"Good," replied Clearchus. "I will bring all, and I will show you, on my
side, the source from which I derive my information concerning you."</p>
<p>After this conversation Tissaphernes, with kindliest expression, invited
Clearchus to remain with him at the time, and entertained him at dinner.
Next day Clearchus returned to the camp, and made no secret of his
persuasion that he at any rate stood high in the affections of
Tissaphernes, and he reported what he had said, insisting that those
invited ought to go to Tissaphernes, and that any Hellene convicted of
calumnious language ought to be punished, not only as traitors themselves,
but as disaffected to their fellow-countrymen. The slanderer and traducer
was Menon; so, at any rate, he suspected, because he knew that he had had
meetings with Tissaphernes whilst he was with Ariaeus, and was factiously
opposed to himself, plotting how to win over the whole army to him, as a
means of winning the good graces of Tissaphernes. But Clearchus wanted the
entire army to give its mind to no one else, and that refractory people
should be put out of the way. Some of the soldiers protested: the captains
and generals had better not all go; it was better not to put too much
confidence in Tissaphernes. But Clearchus insisted so strongly that
finally it was arranged for five generals to go and twenty captains. These
were accompanied by about two hundred of the other soldiers, who took the
opportunity of marketing.</p>
<p>On arrival at the doors of Tissaphernes's quarters the generals were
summoned inside. They were Proxenus the Boeotian, Menon the Thessalian,
Agias the Arcadian, Clearchus the Laconian, and Socrates the Achaean;
while the captains remained at the doors. Not long after that, at one and
the same signal, those within were seized and those without cut down;
after which some of the barbarian horsemen galloped over the plain,
killing every Hellene they encountered, bond or free. The Hellenes, as
they looked from the camp, viewed that strange horsemanship with surprise,
and could not explain to themselves what it all meant, until Nicarchus the
Arcadian came tearing along for bare life with a wound in the belly, and
clutching his protruding entrails in his hands. He told them all that had
happened. Instantly the Hellenes ran to their arms, one and all, in utter
consternation, and fully expecting that the enemy would instantly be down
upon the camp. However, they did not all come; only Ariaeus came, and
Artaozus and Mithridates, who were Cyrus's most faithful friends; but the
interpreter of the Hellenes said he saw and recognised the brother of
Tissaphernes also with them. They had at their back other Persians also,
armed with cuirasses, as many as three hundred. As soon as they were
within a short distance, they bade any general or captain of the Hellenes
who might be there to approach and hear a message from the king. After
this, two Hellene generals went out with all precaution. These were
Cleanor the Orchomenian (3), and Sophaenetus the Stymphalion, attended by
Xenophon the Athenian, who went to learn news of Proxenus. Cheirisophus
was at the time away in a village with a party gathering provisions. As
soon as they had halted within earshot, Ariaeus said: "Hellenes, Clearchus
being shown to have committed perjury and to have broken the truce, has
suffered the penalty, and he is dead; but Proxenus and Menon, in return
for having given information of his treachery, are in high esteem and
honour. As to yourselves, the king demands your arms. He claims them as
his, since they belonged to Cyrus, who was his slave." To this the
Hellenes made answer by the mouth of Cleanor of Orchomenus, their
spokesman, who said, addressing Ariaeus: "Thou villain, Ariaeus, and you
the rest of you, who were Cyrus's friends, have you no shame before God or
man, first to swear to us that you have the same friends and the same
enemies as we ourselves, and then to turn and betray us, making common
cause with Tissaphernes, that most impious and villainous of men? With him
you have murdered the very men to whom you gave your solemn word and oath,
and to the rest of us turned traitors; and, having so done, you join hand
with our enemies to come against us." Ariaeus answered: "There is no doubt
but that Clearchus has been known for some time to harbour designs against
Tissaphernes and Orontas, and all of us who side with them." Taking up
this assertion, Xenophon said: "Well, then, granting that Clearchus broke
the truce contrary to our oaths, he has his deserts, for perjurers deserve
to perish; but where are Proxenus and Menon, our generals and your good
friends and benefactors, as you admit? Send them back to us. Surely, just
because they are friends of both parites, they will try to give us the
best advice for you and for us."</p>
<p>At this, the Asiatics stood discussing with one another for a long while,
and then they went away without vouchsafing a word.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0020" id="link2H_4_0020"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>The generals who were thus seized were taken up to the king and there
decapitated. The first of these, Clearchus, was a thorough soldier, and a
true lover of fighting. This is the testimony of all who knew him
intimately. As long as the war between the Lacedaemonians and Athenians
lasted, he could find occupation at home; but after the peace, he
persuaded his own city that the Thracians were injuring the Hellenes, and
having secured his object, set sail, empowered by the ephorate to make war
upon the Thracians north of the Chersonese and Perinthus. But he had no
sooner fairly started than, for some reason or other, the ephors changed
their minds, and endeavoured to bring him back again from the isthmus.
Thereupon he refused further obedience, and went off with sails set for
the Hellespont. In consequence he was condemned to death by the Spartan
authorities for disobedience to orders; and now, finding himself an exile,
he came to Cyrus. Working on the feelings of that prince, in language
described elsewhere, he received from his entertainer a present of ten
thousand darics. Having got this money, he did not sink into a life of
ease and indolence, but collected an army with it, carried on war against
the Thracians, and conquered them in battle, and from that date onwards
harried and plundered them with war incessantly, until Cyrus wanted his
army; whereupon he at once went off, in hopes of finding another sphere of
warfare in his company.</p>
<p>These, I take it, were the characteristic acts of a man whose affections
are set on warfare. When it is open to him to enjoy peace with honour, no
shame, no injury attached, still he prefers war; when he may live at home
at ease, he insists on toil, if only it may end in fighting; when it is
given to him to keep his riches without risk, he would rather lessen his
fortune by the pastime of battle. To put it briefly, war was his mistress;
just as another man will spend his fortune on a favourite, or to gratify
some pleasure, so he chose to squander his substance on soldiering.</p>
<p>But if the life of a soldier was a passion with him, he was none the less
a soldier born, as herein appears; danger was a delight to him; he courted
it, attacking the enemy by night or by day; and in difficulties he did not
lose his head, as all who ever served in a campaign with him would with
one consent allow. A good solder! the question arises, Was he equally good
as a commander? It must be admitted that, as far as was compatible with
his quality of temper, he was; none more so. Capable to a singular degree
of devising how his army was to get supplies, and of actually getting
them, he was also capable of impressing upon those about him that
Clearchus must be obeyed; and that he brought about by the very hardness
of his nature. With a scowling expression and a harshly-grating voice, he
chastised with severity, and at times with such fury, that he was sorry
afterwards himself for what he had done. Yet it was not without purpose
that he applied the whip; he had a theory that there was no good to be got
out of an unchastened army. A saying of his is recorded to the effect that
the soldier who is to mount guard and keep his hands off his friends, and
be ready to dash without a moment's hesitation against the foe—must
fear his commander more than the enemy. Accordingly, in any strait, this
was the man whom the soldiers were eager to obey, and they would have no
other in his place. The cloud which lay upon his brow, at those times lit
up with brightness; his face became radiant, and the old sternness was so
charged with vigour and knitted strength to meet the foe, that it savoured
of salvation, not of cruelty. But when the pinch of danger was past, and
it was open to them to go and taste subordination under some other
officer, many forsook him. So lacking in grace of manner was he; but was
ever harsh and savage, so that the feeling of the soldiers towards him was
that of schoolboys to a master. In other words, though it was not his good
fortune ever to have followers inspired solely by friendship or goodwill,
yet those who found themselves under him, either by State appointment or
through want, or other arch necessity, yielded him implicit obedience.
From the moment that he led them to victory, the elements which went to
make his soldiers efficient were numerous enough. There was the feeling of
confidence in facing the foe, which never left them, and there was the
dread of punishment at his hands to keep them orderly. In this way and to
this extent he knew how to rule; but to play a subordinate part himself he
had no great taste; so, at any rate, it was said. At the time of his death
he must have been about fifty years of age.</p>
<p>Proxenus, the Boeotian, was of a different temperament. It had been the
dream of his boyhood to become a man capable of great achievements. In
obedience to this passionate desire it was, that he paid his fee to
Gorgias of Leontini (1). After enojoying that teacher's society, he
flattered himself that he must be at once qualified to rule; and while he
was on friendly terms with the leaders of the age, he was not to be
outdone in reciprocity of service (2). In this mood he threw himself into
the projects of Cyrus, and in return expected to derive from this essay
the reward of a great name, large power, and wide wealth. But for all that
he pitched his hopes so high, it was none the less evident that he would
refuse to gain any of the ends he set before him wrongfully. Righteously
and honourably he would obtain them, if he might, or else forego them. As
a commander he had the art of leading gentlemen, but he failed to inspire
adequately either respect for himself or fear in the soldiers under him.
Indeed, he showed a more delicate regard for his soldiers than his
subordinates for him, and he was indisputably more apprehensive of
incurring their hatred than they were of losing their fidelity. The one
thing needful to real and recognised generalship was, he thought, to
praise the virtuous and to withhold praise from the evildoer. It can be
easily understood, then, that of those who were brought in contact with
him, the good and noble indeed were his well-wishers; but he laid himself
open to the machinations of the base, who looked upon him as a person to
be dealt with as they liked. At the time of his death he was only thirty
years of age.</p>
<p>(1) The famous rhetorician of Leontini, 485-380 B.C. His fee was 1<br/>
minae.<br/>
<br/>
(2) Proxenus, like Cyrus, is to some extent a prototype of the Cyrus<br/>
of the "Cyropaedia." In other words, the author, in delineating<br/>
the portrait of his ideal prince, drew from the recollection of<br/>
many princely qualities observed by him in the characters of many<br/>
friends. Apart from the intrinsic charm of the story, the<br/>
"Anabasis" is interesting as containing the raw material of<br/>
experience and reflection which "this young scholar or<br/>
philosopher," our friend, the author, will one day turn to<br/>
literary account.<br/></p>
<p>As to Menon the Thessalian (3), the mainspring of his action was obvious;
what he sought after insatiably was wealth. Rule he sought after only as a
stepping-stone to larger spoils. Honours and high estate he craved for
simply that he might extend the area of his gains; and if he studied to be
on friendly terms with the powerful, it was in order that he might commit
wrong with impunity. The shortest road to the achievement of his desires
lay, he thought, through false swearing, lying, and cheating; for in his
vocabulary simplicity and truth were synonyms of folly. Natural affection
he clearly entertained for nobody. If he called a man his friend it might
be looked upon as certain that he was bent on ensnaring him. Laughter at
an enemy he considered out of place, but his whole conversation turned
upon the ridicule of his associates. In like manner, the possessions of
his foes were secure from his designs, since it was no easy task, he
thought, to steal from people on their guard; but it was his particular
good fortune to have discovered how easy it is to rob a friend in the
midst of his security. If it were a perjured person or a wrongdoer, he
dreaded him as well armed and intrenched; but the honourable and the
truth-loving he tried to practise on, regarding them as weaklings devoid
of manhood. And as other men pride themselves on piety and truth and
righteousness, so Menon prided himself on a capacity for fraud, on the
fabrication of lies, on the mockery and scorn of friends. The man who was
not a rogue he ever looked upon as only half educated. Did he aspire to
the first place in another man's friendship, he set about his object by
slandering those who stood nearest to him in affection. He contrived to
secure the obedience of his solders by making himself an accomplice in
their misdeeds, and the fluency with which he vaunted his own capacity and
readiness for enormous guilt was a sufficient title to be honoured and
courted by them. Or if any one stood aloof from him, he set it down as a
meritorious act of kindness on his part that during their intercourse he
had not robbed him of existence.</p>
<p>(3) For a less repulsive conception of Menon's character, however<br/>
unhistorical, see Plato's "Meno," and Prof. Jowlett's<br/>
Introduction, "Plato," vol. i. p. 265: "He is a Thessalian<br/>
Alcibiades, rich and luxurious—a spoilt child of fortune."<br/></p>
<p>As to certain obscure charges brought against his character, these may
certainly be fabrications. I confine myself to the following facts, which
are known to all. He was in the bloom of youth when he procured from
Aristippus the command of his mercenaries; he had not yet lost that bloom
when he became exceedingly intimate with Ariaeus, a barbarian, whose
liking for fair young men was the explanation; and before he had grown a
beard himself, he had contracted a similar relationship with a bearded
favourite named Tharypas. When his fellow-generals were put to death on
the plea that they had marched with Cyrus against the king, he alone,
although he had shared their conduct, was exempted from their fate. But
after their deaths the vengeance of the king fell upon him, and he was put
to death, not like Clearchus and the others by what would appear to be the
speediest of deaths—decapitation—but, as report says, he lived
for a year in pain and disgrace and died the death of a felon.</p>
<p>Agias the Arcadian and Socrates the Achaean were both among the sufferers
who were put to death. To the credit, be it said, of both, no one ever
derided either as cowardly in war: no one ever had a fault to find with
either on the score of friendship. They were both about thirty-five years
of age.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0021" id="link2H_4_0021"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK III </h2>
<p>(In the preceding pages of the narrative will be found a full<br/>
account, not only of the doings of the Hellenes during the<br/>
advance of Cyrus till the date of the battle, but of the<br/>
incidents which befell them after Cyrus' death at the<br/>
commencement of the retreat, while in company with<br/>
Tissaphernes during the truce.)<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0022" id="link2H_4_0022"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>After the generals had been seized, and the captains and soldiers who
formed their escort had been killed, the Hellenes lay in deep perplexity—a
prey to painful reflections. Here were they at the king's gates, and on
every side environing them were many hostile cities and tribes of men. Who
was there now to furnish them with a market? Separated from Hellas by more
than a thousand miles, they had not even a guide to point the way.
Impassable rivers lay athwart their homeward route, and hemmed them in.
Betrayed even by the Asiatics, at whose side they had marched with Cyrus
to the attack, they were left in isolation. Without a single mounted
trooper to aid them in pursuit: was it not perfectly plain that if they
won a battle, their enemies would escape to a man, but if they were beaten
themselves, not one soul of them would survive?</p>
<p>Haunted by such thoughts, and with hearts full of despair, but few of them
tasted food that evening; but few of them kindled even a fire, and many
never came into camp at all that night, but took their rest where each
chanced to be. They could not close their eyes for very pain and yearning
after their fatherlands or their parents, the wife or child whom they
never expected to look upon again. Such was the plight in which each and
all tried to seek repose.</p>
<p>Now there was in that host a certain man, an Athenian (1), Xenophon, who
had accompanied Cyrus, neither as a general, nor as an officer, nor yet as
a private soldier, but simply on the invitation of an old friend,
Proxenus. This old friend had sent to fetch him from home, promising, if
he would come, to introduce him to Cyrus, "whom," said Proxenus, "I
consider to be worth my fatherland and more to me."</p>
<p>(1) The reader should turn to Grote's comments on the first appearance<br/>
of Xenophon. He has been mentioned before, of course, more than<br/>
once before; but he now steps, as the protagonist, upon the scene,<br/>
and as Grote says: "It is in true Homeric vein, and in something<br/>
like Homeric language, that Xenophon (to whom we owe the whole<br/>
narrative of the expedition) describes his dream, or the<br/>
intervention of Oneiros, sent by Zeus, from which this renovating<br/>
impulse took its rise."<br/></p>
<p>Xenophon having read the letter, consulted Socrates the Athenian, whether
he should accept or refuse the invitation. Socrates, who had a suspicion
that the State of Athens might in some way look askance at my friendship
with Cyrus, whose zealous co-operation with the Lacedaemonians against
Athens in the war was not forgotten, advised Xenophon to go to Delphi and
there to consult the god as to the desirability of such a journey.
Xenophon went and put the question to Apollo, to which of the gods he must
pray and do sacrifice, so that he might best accomplish his intended
journey and return in safety, with good fortune. Then Apollo answered him:
"To such and such gods must thou do sacrifice," and when he had returned
home he reported to Socrates the oracle. But he, when he heard, blamed
Xenophon that he had not, in the first instance, inquired of the god,
whether it were better for him to go or to stay, but had taken on himself
to settle that point affirmatively, by inquiring straightway, how he might
best perform the journey. "Since, however," continued Socrates, "you did
so put the question, you should do what the god enjoined." Thus, and
without further ado, Xenophon offered sacrifice to those whom the god had
named, and set sail on his voyage. He overtook Proxenus and Cyrus at
Sardis, when they were just ready to start on the march up country, and
was at once introduced to Cyrus. Proxenus eagerly pressed him to stop—a
request which Cyrus with like ardour supported, adding that as soon as the
campaign was over he would send him home. The campaign referred to was
understood to be against the Pisidians. That is how Xenophon came to join
the expedition, deceived indeed, though not by Proxenus, who was equally
in the dark with the rest of the Hellenes, not counting Clearchus, as to
the intended attack upon the king. Then, though the majority were in
apprehension of the journey, which was not at all to their minds, yet, for
very shame of one another and Cyrus, they continued to follow him, and
with the rest went Xenophon.</p>
<p>And now in this season of perplexity, he too, with the rest, was in sore
distress, and could not sleep; but anon, getting a snatch of sleep, he had
a dream. It seemed to him in a vision that there was a storm of thunder
and lightning, and a bolt fell on his father's house, and thereupon the
house was all in a blaze. He sprung up in terror, and pondering the
matter, decided that in part the dream was good: in that he had seen a
great light from Zeus, whilst in the midst of toil and danger. But partly
too he feared it, for evidently it had come from Zeus the king. And the
fire kindled all around—what could that mean but that he was hemmed
in by various perplexities, and so could not escape from the country of
the king? The full meaning, however, is to be discovered from what
happened after the dream.</p>
<p>This is what took place. As soon as he was fully awake, the first clear
thought which came into his head was, Why am I lying here? The night
advances; with the day, it is like enough, the enemy will be upon us. If
we are to fall into the hands of the king, what is left us but to face the
most horrible of sights, and to suffer the most fearful pains, and then to
die, insulted, an ignominious death? To defend ourselves—to ward off
that fate—not a hand stirs: no one is preparing, none cares; but
here we lie, as though it were time to rest and take our ease. I too! what
am I waiting for? a general to undertake the work? and from what city? am
I waiting till I am older mysef and of riper age? older I shall never be,
if to-day I betray myself to my enemies.</p>
<p>Thereupon he got up, and called together first Proxenus's officers; and
when they were met, he said: "Sleep, sirs, I cannot, nor can you, I fancy,
nor lie here longer, when I see in what straits we are. Our enemy, we may
be sure, did not open war upon us till he felt he had everything amply
ready; yet none of us shows a corresponding anxiety to enter the lists of
battle in the bravest style.</p>
<p>"And yet, if we yield ourselves and fall into the king's power, need we
ask what our fate will be? This man, who, when his own brother, the son of
the same parents, was dead, was not content with that, but severed head
and hand from the body, and nailed them to a cross. We, then, who have not
even the tie of blood in our favour, but who marched against him, meaning
to make a slave of him instead of a king—and to slay him if we
could: what is likely to be our fate at his hands? Will he not go all
lengths so that, by inflicting on us the extreme of ignominy and torture,
he may rouse in the rest of mankind a terror of ever marching against him
any more? There is no question but that our business is to avoid by all
means getting into his clutches.</p>
<p>"For my part, all the while the truce lasted, I never ceased pitying
ourselves and congratulating the king and those with him, as, like a
helpless spectator, I surveyed the extent and quality of their territory,
the plenteousness of their provisions, the multitude of their dependants,
their cattle, their gold, and their apparel. And then to turn and ponder
the condition of our soldiers, without part or lot in these good things,
except we bought it; few, I knew, had any longer the wherewithal to buy,
and yet our oath held us down, so that we could not provide ourselves
otherwise than by purchase. I say, as I reasoned thus, there were times
when I dreaded the truce more than I now dread war.</p>
<p>"Now, however, that they have abruptly ended the truce, there is an end
also to their own insolence and to our suspicion. All these good things of
theirs are now set as prizes for the combatants. To whichsoever of us
shall prove the better men, will they fall as guerdons; and the gods
themselves are the judges of the strife. The gods, who full surely will be
on our side, seeing it is our enemies who have taken their names falsely;
whilst we, with much to lure us, yet for our oath's sake, and the gods who
were our witnesses, sternly held aloof. So that, it seems to me, we have a
right to enter upon this contest with much more heart than our foes; and
further, we are possessed of bodies more capable than theirs of bearing
cold and heat and labour; souls too we have, by the help of heaven, better
and braver; nay, the men themselves are more vulnerable, more mortal, than
ourselves, if so be the gods vouchsafe to give us victory once again.</p>
<p>"Howbeit, for I doubt not elsewhere similar reflections are being made,
whatsoever betide, let us not, in heaven's name, wait for others to come
and challenge us to noble deeds; let us rather take the lead in
stimulating the rest to valour. Show yourselves to be the bravest of
officers, and among generals, the worthiest to command. For myself, if you
choose to start forwards on this quest, I will follow; or, if you bid me
lead you, my age shall be no excuse to stand between me and your orders.
At least I am of full age, I take it, to avert misfortune from my own
head."</p>
<p>Such were the speaker's words; and the officers, when they heard, all,
with one exception, called upon him to put himself at their head. This was
a certain Apollonides there present, who spoke in the Boeotian dialect.
This man's opinion was that it was mere nonsense for any one to pretend
they could obtain safety otherwise than by an appeal to the king, if he
had skill to enforce it; and at the same time he began to dilate on the
difficulties. But Xenophon cut him short. "O most marvellous of men!
though you have eyes to see, you do not perceive; though you have ears to
hear, you do not recollect. You were present with the rest of us now here
when, after the death of Cyrus, the king, vaunting himself on that
occurrence, sent dictatorially to bid us lay down our arms. But when we,
instead of giving up our arms, put them on and went and pitched our camp
near him, his manner changed. It is hard to say what he did not do, he was
so at his wit's end, sending us embassies and begging for a truce, and
furnishing provisions the while, until he had got it. Or to take the
contrary instance, when just now, acting precisely on your principles, our
generals and captains went, trusting to the truce, unarmed to a conference
with them, what came of it? what is happening at this instant? Beaten,
goaded with pricks, insulted, poor souls, they cannot even die: though
death, I ween, would be very sweet. And you, who know all this, how can
you say that it is mere nonsense to talk of self-defence? how can you bid
us go again and try the arts of persuasion? In my opinion, sirs, we ought
not to admit this fellow to the same rank with ourselves; rather ought we
to deprive him of his captaincy, and load him with packs and treat him as
such. The man is a disgrace to his own fatherland and the whole of Hellas,
that, being a Hellene, he is what he is."</p>
<p>Here Agasias the Stymphalian broke in, exclaiming: "Nay, this fellow has
no connection either with Boeotia or with Hellas, none whatever. I have
noted both his ears bored like a Lydian's." And so it was. Him then they
banished. But the rest visited the ranks, and wherever a general was left,
they summoned the general; where he was gone, the lieutenant-general; and
where again the captain alone was left, the captain. As soon as they were
all met, they seated themselves in front of the place d'armes: the
assembled generals and officers, numbering about a hundred. It was nearly
midnight when this took place.</p>
<p>Thereupon Hieronymous the Eleian, the eldest of Proxenus's captains,
commenced speaking as follows: "Generals and captains, it seemed right to
us, in view of the present crisis, ourselves to assemble and to summon
you, that we might advise upon some practicable course. Would you,
Xenophon, repeat what you said to us?"</p>
<p>Thereupon Xenophon spoke as follows: "We all know only too well, that the
king and Tissaphernes have seized as many of us as they could, and it is
clear they are plotting to destroy the rest of us if they can. Our
business is plain: it is to do all we can to avoid getting into the power
of the barbarians; rather, if we can, we will get them into our power.
Rely upon this then, all you who are here assembled, now is your great
opportunity. The soldiers outside have their eyes fixed upon you; if they
think that you are faint-hearted, they will turn cowards; but if you show
them that you are making your own preparations to attack the enemy, and
setting an example to the rest—follow you, be assured, they will:
imitate you they will. May be, it is but right and fair that you should
somewhat excel them, for you are generals, you are commanders of brigades
or regiments; and if, while it was peace, you had the advantage in wealth
and position, so now, when it is war, you are expected to rise superior to
the common herd—to think for them, to toil for them, whenever there
be need.</p>
<p>"At this very moment you would confer a great boon on the army, if you
made it your business to appoint generals and officers to fill the places
of those that are lost. For without leaders nothing good or noble, to put
it concisely, was ever wrought anywhere; and in military matters this is
absolutely true; for if discipline is held to be of saving virtue, the
want of it has been the ruin of many ere now. Well, then! when you have
appointed all the commanders necessary, it would only be opportune, I take
it, if you were to summon the rest of the soldiers and speak some words of
encouragement. Even now, I daresay you noticed yourselves the crestfallen
air with which they came into camp, the despondency with which they fell
to picket duty, so that, unless there is a change for the better, I do not
know for what service they will be fit; whether by night, if need were, or
even by day. The thing is to get them to turn their thoughts to what they
mean to do, instead of to what they are likely to suffer. Do that, and
their spirits will soon revive wonderfully. You know, I need hardly remind
you, it is not numbers or strength that gives victory in war; but, heaven
helping them, to one or other of two combatants it is given to dash with
stouter hearts to meet the foe, and such onset, in nine cases out of ten,
those others refuse to meet. This observation, also, I have laid to heart,
that they, who in matters of war seek in all ways to save their lives, are
just they who, as a rule, die dishonourably; whereas they who, recognising
that death is the common lot and destiny of all men, strive hard to die
nobly: these more frequently, as I observe, do after all attain to old
age, or, at any rate, while life lasts, they spend their days more
happily. This lesson let all lay to heart this day, for we are just at
such a crisis of our fate. Now is the season to be brave ourselves, and to
stimulate the rest by our example."</p>
<p>With these words he ceased; and after him, Cheirisophus said: "Xenophon,
hitherto I knew only so much of you as that you were, I heard, an
Athenian, but now I must commend you for your words and for your conduct.
I hope that there may be many more like you, for it would prove a public
blessing." Then turning to the officers: "And now," said he, "let us waste
no time; retire at once, I beg you, and choose leaders where you need
them. After you have made your elections, come back to the middle of the
camp, and bring the newly appointed officers. After that, we will there
summon a general meeting of the soldiers. Let Tolmides, the herald," he
added, "be in attendance." With these words on his lips he got up, in
order that what was needful might be done at once without delay. After
this the generals were chosen. These were Timasion the Dardanian, in place
of Clearchus; Xanthicles, an Achaean, in place of Socrates; Cleanor, an
Arcadian, in place of Agias; Philesius, an Achaean, in place of Menon; and
in place of Proxenus, Xenophon the Athenian.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0023" id="link2H_4_0023"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>By the time the new generals had been chosen, the first faint glimmer of
dawn had hardly commenced, as they met in the centre of the camp, and
resolved to post an advance guard and to call a general meeting of the
soldiers. Now, when these had come together, Cheirisophus the
Lacedaemonian first rose and spoke as follows: "Fellow-soldiers, the
present posture of affairs is not pleasant, seeing that we are robbed of
so many generals and captains and soldiers; and more than that, our former
allies, Ariaeus and his men, have betrayed us; still, we must rise above
our circumstances to prove ourselves brave men, and not give in, but try
to save ourselves by glorious victory if we can; or, if not, at least to
die gloriously, and never, while we have breath in our bodies, fall into
the hands of our enemies. In which latter case, I fear, we shall suffer
things, which I pray the gods may visit rather upon those we hate."</p>
<p>At this point Cleanor the Ochomenian stood up and spoke as follows: "You
see, men, the perjury and the impiety of the king. You see the
faithlessness of Tissaphernes, professing that he was next-door neighbour
to Hellas, and would give a good deal to save us, in confirmation of which
he took an oath to us himself, he gave us the pledge of his right hand,
and then, with a lie upon his lips, this same man turned round and
arrested our generals. He had no reverence even for Zeus, the god of
strangers; but, after entertaining Clearchus at his own board as a friend,
he used his hospitality to delude and decoy his victims. And Ariaeus, whom
we offered to make king, with whom we exchanged pledges not to betray each
other, even this man, without a particle of fear of the gods, or respect
for Cyrus in his grave, though he was most honoured by Cyrus in lifetime,
even he has turned aside to the worst foes of Cyrus, and is doing his best
to injure the dead man's friends. Them may the gods requite as they
deserve! But we, with these things before our eyes, will not any more be
cheated and cajoled by them; we will make the best fight we can, and
having made it, whatever the gods think fit to send, we will accept."</p>
<p>After him Xenophon arose; he was arrayed for war in his bravest apparel
(1): "For," said he to himself, "if the gods grant victory, the finest
attire will match with victory best; or if I must needs die, then for one
who has aspired to the noblest, it is well there should be some outward
correspondence between his expectation and his end." He began his speech
as follows: "Cleanor has spoken of the perjury and faithlessness of the
barbarians, and you yourselves know them only too well, I fancy. If then
we are minded to enter a second time into terms of friendship with them,
with the experience of what our generals, who in all confidence entrusted
themselves to their power, have suffered, reason would we should feel deep
despondency. If, on the other hand, we purpose to take our good swords in
our hands and to inflict punishment on them for what they have done, and
from this time forward will be on terms of downright war with them, then,
God helping, we have many a bright hope of safety." The words were
scarcely spoken when someone sneezed (2), and with one impulse the
soldiers bowed in worship; and Xenophon proceeded: "I propose, sirs,
since, even as we spoke of safety, an omen from Zeus the Saviour has
appeared, we vow a vow to sacrifice to the Saviour thank-offerings for
safe deliverance, wheresoever first we reach a friendly country; and let
us couple with that vow another of individual assent, that we will offer
to the rest of the gods 'according to our ability.' Let all those who are
in favour of this proposal hold up their hands." They all held up their
hands, and there and then they vowed a vow and chanted the battle hymn.
But as soon as these sacred matters were duly ended, he began once more
thus: "I was saying that many and bright are the hopes we have of safety.
First of all, we it is who confirm and ratify the oaths we take by heaven,
but our enemies have taken false oaths and broken the truce, contrary to
their solemn word. This being so, it is but natural that the gods should
be opposed to our enemies, but with ourselves allied; the gods, who are
able to make the great ones quickly small, and out of sore perplexity can
save the little ones with ease, what time it pleases them. In the next
place, let me recall to your minds the dangers of our own forefathers,
that you may see and know that bravery is your heirloom, and that by the
aid of the gods brave men are rescued even out of the midst of sorest
straits." So was it when the Persians came, and their attendant hosts (3),
with a very great armament, to wipe out Athens from the face of the earth—the
men of Athens had the heart to withstand them and conquered them. Then
they vowed to Artemis that for every man they slew of the enemy, they
would sacrifice to the goddess goats so many; and when they could not find
sufficient for the slain, they resolved to offer yearly five hundred; and
to this day they perform that sacrifice. And at a somewhat later date,
when Xerxes assembled his countless hosts and marched upon Hellas, then
(4) too our fathers conquered the forefathers of our foes by land and by
sea.</p>
<p>(1) So it is said of the Russian General Skobelef, that he had a<br/>
strange custom of going into battle in his cleanest uniform,<br/>
perfumed, and wearing a diamond-hilted sword, "in order that," as<br/>
he said, "he might die in his best attire."<br/>
<br/>
(2) For this ancient omen see "Odyssey," xvii. 541: "Even as she<br/>
spake, and Telemachus sneezed loudly, and around the roof rung<br/>
wondrously. And Penelope laughed."... "Dost thou not mark how<br/>
my son has sneezed a blessing on all my words?"<br/>
<br/>
(3) See Herod. vi. 114; the allusion is to the invasion of Greeze by<br/>
Datis and Artaphernes, and to their defeat at Marathon, B.C. 490.<br/>
"Heredotus estimates the number of those who fell on the Persian<br/>
side at 6400 men: the number of Athenian dead is accurately known,<br/>
since all were collected for the last solemn obsequies—they were<br/>
192."—Grote, "Hist. of Greece," vol. v. p. 475.<br/>
<br/>
(4) Then = at Salamis, B.C. 480, and at Plataea and Mycale, B.C. 479,<br/>
on the same day.<br/></p>
<p>"And proofs of these things are yet to be seen in trophies; but the
greatest witness of all is the freedom of our cities—the liberty of
that land in which you were born and bred. For you call no man master or
lord; you bow your heads to none save to the gods alone. Such were your
forefathers, and their sons are ye. Think not I am going to say that you
put to shame in any way your ancestry—far from it. Not many days
since, you too were drawn up in battle face to face with these true
descendants of their ancestors, and by the help of heaven you conquered
them, though they many times outnumbered you. At that time, it was to win
a throne for Cyrus that you showed your bravery; to-day, when the struggle
is for your own salvation, what is more natural than that you should show
yourselves braver and more zealous still. Nay, it is very meet and right
that you should be more undaunted still to-day to face the foe. The other
day, though you had not tested them, and before your eyes lay their
immeasurable host, you had the heart to go against them with the spirit of
your fathers. To-day you have made trial of them, and knowing that,
however many times your number, they do not care to await your onset, what
concern have you now to be afraid of them?</p>
<p>"Nor let any one suppose that herein is a point of weakness, in that
Cyrus's troops, who before were drawn up by your side, have now deserted
us, for they are even worse cowards still than those we worsted. At any
rate they have deserted us, and sought refuge with them. Leaders of the
forlorn hope of flight—far better is it to have them brigaded with
the enemy than shoulder to shoulder in our ranks. But if any of you is out
of heart to think that we have no cavalry, while the enemy have many
squadrons to command, lay to heart this doctrine, that ten thousand horse
only equal ten thousand men upon their backs, neither less nor more. Did
any one ever die in battle from the bite or kick of a horse? It is the
men, the real swordsmen, who do whatever is done in battles. In fact we,
on our stout shanks, are better mounted than those cavalry fellows; there
they hang on to their horses' necks in mortal dread, not only of us, but
of falling off; while we, well planted upon earth, can deal far heavier
blows to our assailants, and aim more steadily at who we will. There is
one point, I admit, in which their cavalry have the whip-hand of us; it is
safer for them than it is for us to run away.</p>
<p>"May be, however, you are in good heart about the fighting, but annoyed to
think that Tissaphernes will not guide us any more, and that the king will
not furnish us with a market any longer. Now, consider, is it better for
us to have a guide like Tissaphernes, whom we know to be plotting against
us, or to take our chance of the stray people whom we catch and compel to
guide us, who will know that any mistake made in leading us will be a sad
mistake for their own lives? Again, is it better to be buying provisions
in a market of their providing, in scant measure and at high prices,
without even the money to pay for them any longer; or, by right of
conquest, to help ourselves, applying such measure as suits our fancy
best?</p>
<p>"Or again, perhaps you admit that our present position is not without its
advantages, but you feel sure that the rivers are a difficulty, and think
that you were never more taken in than when you crossed them; if so,
consider whether, after all, this is not perhaps the most foolish thing
which the barbarians have done. No river is impassable throughout;
whatever difficulties it may present at some distance from its source, you
need only make your way up to the springhead, and there you may cross it
without wetting more than your ankles. But, granted that the rivers do bar
our passage, and that guides are not forthcoming, what care we? We need
feel no alarm for all that. We have heard of the Mysians, a people whom we
certainly cannot admit to be better than ourselves; and yet they inhabit
numbers of large and prosperous cities in the king's own country without
asking leave. The Pisidians are an equally good instance, or the
Lycaonians. We have seen with our own eyes how they fare: seizing
fortresses down in the plains, and reaping the fruits of these men's
territory. As to us, I go so far as to assert, we ought never to have let
it be seen that we were bent on getting home: at any rate, not so soon; we
should have begun stocking and furnishing ourselves, as if we fully meant
to settle down for life somewhere or other hereabouts. I am sure that the
king would be thrice glad to give the Mysians as many guides as they like,
or as many hostages as they care to demand, in return for a safe conduct
out of his country; he would make carriage roads for them, and if they
preferred to take their departure in coaches and four, he would not say
them nay. So too, I am sure, he would be only too glad to accommodate us
in the same way, if he saw us preparing to settle down here. But, perhaps,
it is just as well that we did not stop; for I fear, if once we learn to
live in idleness and to batten in luxury and dalliance with these tall and
handsome Median and Persian women and maidens, we shall be like the
Lotus-eaters (5), and forget the road home altogether.</p>
<p>(5) See "Odyssey," ix. 94, "ever feeding on the Lotus and forgetful of<br/>
returning."<br/></p>
<p>"It seems to me that it is only right, in the first instance, to make an
effort to return to Hellas and to revisit our hearths and homes, if only
to prove to other Hellenes that it is their own faults if they are poor
and needy (6), seeing it is in their power to give to those now living a
pauper life at home a free passage hither, and convert them into
well-to-do burghers at once. Now, sirs, is it not clear that all these
good things belong to whoever has strength to hold them?</p>
<p>(6) Here seems to be the germ—unless, indeed, the thought had been<br/>
conceived above—here at any rate the first conscious expression<br/>
of the colonisation scheme, of which we shall hear more below, in<br/>
reference to Cotyora; the Phasis; Calpe. It appears again fifty<br/>
years later in the author's pamphlet "On Revenues," chapters i.<br/>
and vi. For the special evils of the fourth century B.C., and the<br/>
growth of pauperism between B.C. 401 and 338, see Jebb, "Attic<br/>
Orators," vol i. p. 17.<br/></p>
<p>"Let us look another matter in the face. How are we to march most safely?
or where blows are needed, how are we to fight to the best advantage? That
is the question.</p>
<p>"The first thing which I recommend is to burn the wagons we have got, so
that we may be free to march wherever the army needs, and not,
practically, make our baggage train our general. And, next, we should
throw our tents into the bonfire also: for these again are only a trouble
to carry, and do not contribute one grain of good either for fighting or
getting provisions. Further, let us get rid of all superfluous baggage,
save only what we require for the sake of war, or meat and drink, so that
as many of us as possible may be under arms, and as few as possible doing
porterage. I need not remind you that, in case of defeat, the owners'
goods are not their own; but if we master our foes, we will make them our
baggage bearers.</p>
<p>"It only rests for me to name the one thing which I look upon as the
greatest of all. You see, the enemy did not dare to bring war to bear upon
us until they had first seized our generals; they felt that whilst our
rulers were there, and we obeyed them, they were no match for us in war;
but having got hold of them, they fully expected that the consequent
confusion and anarchy would prove fatal to us. What follows? This:
Officers and leaders ought to be more vigilant ever than their
predecessors; subordinates still more orderly and obedient to those in
command now than even they were to those who are gone. And you should pass
a resolution that, in case of insubordination, any one who stands by is to
aid the officer in chastising the offender. So the enemy will be mightily
deceived; for on this day they will behold ten thousand Clearchuses
instead of one, who will not suffer one man to play the coward. And now it
is high time I brought my remarks to an end, for may be the enemy will be
here anon. Let those who are in favour of these proposals confirm them
with all speed, that they may be realised in fact; or if any other course
seem better, let not any one, even though he be a private soldier, shrink
from proposing it. Our common safety is our common need."</p>
<p>After this Cheirisophus spoke. He said: "If there is anything else to be
done, beyond what Xenophon has mentioned, we shall be able to carry it out
presently; but with regard to what he has already proposed, it seems to me
the best course to vote upon the matters at once. Those who are in favour
of Xenophon's proposals, hold up their hands." They all held them up.
Xenophon rose again and said: "Listen, sirs, while I tell you what I think
we have need of besides. It is clear that we must march where we can get
provisions. Now, I am told there are some splendid villages not more than
two miles and a half distant. I should not be surprised, then, if the
enemy were to hang on our heels and dog us as we retire, like cowardly
curs which rush out at the passer-by and bite him if they can, but when
you turn upon them they run away. Such will be their tactics, I take it.
It may be safer, then, to march in a hollow square, so as to place the
baggage animals and our mob of sutlers in greater security. It will save
time to make the appointments at once, and to settle who leads the square
and directs the vanguard; who will take command of the two flanks, and who
of the rearguard; so that, when the enemy appears, we shall not need to
deliberate, but can at once set in motion the machinery in existence.</p>
<p>"If any one has any better plan, we need not adopt mine; but if not,
suppose Cheirisophus takes the lead, as he is a Lacedaemonian, and the two
eldest generals take in charge the two wings respectively, whilst Timasion
and I, the two youngest, will for the present guard the rear. For the
rest, we can but make experiment of this arrangement, and alter it with
deliberation, as from time to time any improvement suggests itself. If any
one has a better plan to propose, let him do so."... No dissentient voice
was heard. Accordingly he said: "Those in favour of this resolution, hold
up their hands." The resolution was carried. "And now," said he, "it would
be well to separate and carry out what we have decreed. If any of you has
set his heart on seeing his friends again, let him remember to prove
himself a man; there is no other way to achieve his heart's wish. Or is
mere living an object with any of you, strive to conquer; if to slay is
the privilege of victory, to die is the doom of the defeated. Or perhaps
to gain money and wealth is your ambition, strive again for mastery; have
not conquerors the double gain of keeping what is their own, whilst they
seize the possessions of the vanquished?"</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0024" id="link2H_4_0024"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>The speaking was ended; they got up and retired; then they burnt the
wagons and the tents, and after sharing with one another what each needed
out of their various superfluities, they threw the remnant into the fire.
Having done that, they proceeded to make their breakfasts. While they were
breakfasting, Mithridates came with about thirty horsemen, and summoning
the generals within earshot, he thus addressed them: "Men of Hellas, I
have been faithful to Cyrus, as you know well, and to-day I am your
well-wisher; indeed, I am here spending my days in great fear: if then I
could see any salutory course in prospect, I should be disposed to join
you with all my retainers. Please inform me, then, as to what you propose,
regarding me as your friend and well-wisher, anxious only to pursue his
march in your company." The generals held council, and resolved to give
the following answer, Cheirisophus acting as spokesman: "We have resolved
to make our way through the country, inflicting the least possible damage,
provided we are allowed a free passage homewards; but if any one tries to
hinder us, he will have to fight it out with us, and we shall bring all
the force in our power to bear." Thereat Mithridates set himself to prove
to them that their deliverance, except with the king's good pleasure, was
hopeless. Then the meaning of his mission was plain. He was an agent in
disguise; in fact, a relation of Tissaphernes was in attendance to keep a
check on his loyalty. After that, the generals resolved that it would be
better to proclaim open war, without truce or herald, as long as they were
in the enemy's country; for they used to come and corrupt the soldiers,
and they were even successful with one officer—Nicarchus (1), an
Arcadian, who went off in the night with about twenty men.</p>
<p>(1) Can this be the same man whose escape is so graphically described<br/>
above?<br/></p>
<p>After this, they breakfasted and crossed the river Zapatas, marching in
regular order, with the beasts and mob of the army in the middle. They had
not advanced far on their route when Mithridates made his appearance
again, with about a couple of hundred horsemen at his back, and bowmen and
slingers twice as many, as nimble fellows as a man might hope to see. He
approached the Hellenes as if he were friendly; but when they had got
fairly to close quarters, all of a sudden some of them, whether mounted or
on foot, began shooting with their bows and arrows, and another set with
slings, wounding the men. The rearguard of the Hellenes suffered for a
while severely without being able to retaliate, for the Cretans had a
shorter range than the Persians, and at the same time, being light-armed
troops, they lay cooped up within the ranks of the heavy infantry, while
the javelin men again did not shoot far enough to reach the enemy's
slingers. This being so, Xenophon thought there was nothing for it but to
charge, and charge they did; some of the heavy and light infantry, who
were guarding the rear, with him; but for all their charging they did not
catch a single man.</p>
<p>The dearth of cavalry told against the Hellenes; nor were their infantry
able to overhaul the enemy's infantry, with the long start they had, and
considering the shortness of the race, for it was out of the question to
pursue them far from the main body of the army. On the other hand, the
Asiatic cavalry, even while fleeing, poured volleys of arrows behind their
backs, and wounded the pursuers; while the Hellenes must fall back
fighting every step of the way they had measured in the pursuit; so that
by the end of that day they had not gone much more than three miles; but
in the late afternoon they reached the villages.</p>
<p>Here there was a return of the old despondency. Cheirisophus and the
eldest of the generals blamed Xenophon for leaving the main body to give
chase and endangering himself thereby, while he could not damage the enemy
one whit the more. Xenophon admitted that they were right in blaming him:
no better proof of that was wanted than the result. "The fact is," he
added, "I was driven to pursue; it was too trying to look on and see our
men suffer so badly, and be unable to retaliate. However, when we did
charge, there is no denying the truth of what you say; we were not a whit
more able to injure the enemy, while we had considerable difficulty in
beating a retreat ourselves. Thank heaven they did not come upon us in any
great force, but were only a handful of men; so that the injury they did
us was not large, as it might have been; and at least it has served to
show us what we need. At present the enemy shoot and sling beyond our
range, so that our Cretan archers are no match for them; our hand-throwers
cannot reach as far; and when we pursue, it is not possible to push the
pursuit to any great distance from the main body, and within the short
distance no foot-soldier, however fleet of foot, could overtake another
foot-soldier who has a bow-shot the start of him. If, then, we are to
exclude them from all possibility of injuring us as we march, we must get
slingers as soon as possible and cavalry. I am told there are in the army
some Rhodians, most of whom, they say, know how to sling, and their
missile will reach even twice as far as the Persian slings (which, on
account of their being loaded with stones as big as one's fist, have a
comparatively short range; but the Rhodians are skilled in the use of
leaden bullets (2)). Suppose, then, we investigate and find out first of
all who among them possess slings, and for these slings offer the owner
the money value; and to another, who will plait some more, hand over the
money price; and for a third, who will volunteer to be enrolled as a
slinger, invent some other sort of privilege, I think we shall soon find
people to come forward capable of helping us. There are horses in the army
I know; some few with myself, others belonging to Clearchus's stud, and a
good many others captured from the enemy, used for carrying baggage. Let
us take the pick of these, supplying their places by ordinary baggage
animals, and equipping the horses for cavalry. I should not wonder if our
troopers gave some annoyance to these fugitives."</p>
<p>(2) These words sound to me like an author's note, parenthetically,<br/>
and perhaps inadvertently, inserted into the text. It is an<br/>
"aside" to the reader, which in a modern book would appear as a<br/>
footnote.<br/></p>
<p>These proposals were carried, and that night two hundred slingers were
enrolled, and next day as many as fifty horse and horsemen passed muster
as duly qualified; buff jackets and cuirasses were provided for them, and
a commandant of cavalry appointed to command—Lycius, the son of
Polystratus, by name, an Athenian.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0025" id="link2H_4_0025"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>That day they remained inactive, but the next they rose earlier than
usual, and set out betimes, for they had a ravine to cross, where they
feared the enemy might attack them in the act of crossing. When they were
across, Mithridates appeared again with one thousand horse, and archers
and slingers to the number of four thousand. This whole body he had got by
request from Tissaphernes, and in return he undertook to deliver up the
Hellenes to Tissaphernes. He had grown contemptuous since his late attack,
when, with so small a detachment, he had done, as he thought, a good deal
of mischief, without the slightest loss to himself.</p>
<p>When the Hellenes were not only right across, but had got about a mile
from the ravine, Mithridates also crossed with his forces. An order had
been passed down the lines, what light infantry and what heavy infantry
were to take part in the pursuit; and the cavalry were instructed to
follow up the pursuit with confidence, as a considerable support was in
their rear. So, when Mithridates had come up with them, and they were well
within arrow and sling shot, the bugle sounded the signal to the Hellenes;
and immediately the detachment under orders rushed to close quarters, and
the cavalry charged. There the enemy preferred not to wait, but fled
towards the ravine. In this pursuit the Asiatics lost several of their
infantry killed, and of their cavalry as many as eighteen were taken
prisoners in the ravine. As to those who were slain the Hellenes, acting
upon impulse, mutilated their bodies, by way of impressing their enemy
with as frightful an image as possible.</p>
<p>So fared the foe and so fell back; but the Hellenes, continuing their
march in safety for the rest of that day, reached the river Tigris. Here
they came upon a large deserted city, the name of which was Larissa (1): a
place inhabited by the Medes in days of old; the breadth of its walls was
twenty-five feet, and the height of them a hundred, and the circuit of the
whole two parasangs. It was built of clay-bricks, supported on a stone
basis twenty feet high. This city the king of the Persians (2) besieged,
what time the Persians strove to snatch their empire from the Medes, but
he could in no wise take it; then a cloud hid the face of the sun and
blotted out the light thereof, until the inhabitants were gone out of the
city, and so it was taken. By the side of this city there was a stone
pyramid in breadth a hundred feet, and in height two hundred feet; in it
were many of the barbarians who had fled for refuge from the neighbouring
villages.</p>
<p>(1) Larissa, on the side of the modern Nimrud (the south-west corner,<br/>
as is commonly supposed, of Nineveh). The name is said to mean<br/>
"citadel," and is given to various Greek cities (of which several<br/>
occur in Xenophon).<br/>
<br/>
(2) I.e. Cyrus the Great.<br/></p>
<p>From this place they marched one stage of six parasangs to a great
deserted fortress (which lay over against the city), and the name of that
city was Mespila (3). The Medes once dwelt in it. The basement was made of
polished stone full of shells; fifty feet was the breadth of it, and fifty
feet the height; and on this basement was reared a wall of brick, the
breadth whereof was fifty feet and the height thereof four hundred; and
the circuit of the wall was six parasangs. Hither, as the story goes,
Medea (4), the king's wife, betook herself in flight what time the Medes
lost their empire at the hands of the Persians. To this city also the king
of the Pesians laid siege, but could not take it either by length of days
or strength of hand. But Zeus sent amazement on the inhabitants thereof,
and so it was taken.</p>
<p>(3) Opposite Mosul, the north-west portion of the ancient Nineveh,<br/>
about eighteen miles above Larissa. The circuit of Nineveh is said<br/>
to have been about fifty-six miles. It was overthrown by Cyrus in<br/>
B.C. 558.<br/>
<br/>
(4) The wife of Astyages, the last king of Media. Some think "the wall<br/>
of Media" should be "Medea's wall," constructed in the period of<br/>
Queen Nitocris, B.C. 560.<br/></p>
<p>From this place they marched one stage—four parasangs. But, while
still on this stage, Tissaphernes made his appearance. He had with him his
own cavalry and a force belonging to Orontas, who had the king's daughter
to wife; and there were, moreover, with them the Asiatics whom Cyrus had
taken with him on his march up; together with those whom the king's
brother had brought as a reinforcement to the king; besides those whom
Tissaphernes himself had received as a gift from the king, so that the
armament appeared to be very great. When they were close, he halted some
of his regiments at the rear and wheeled others into position on either
flank, but hesitated to attack, having no mind apparently to run any
risks, and contenting himself with an order to his slingers to sling and
his archers to shoot. But when the Rhodian slingers and the bowmen (5),
posted at intervals, retaliated, and every shot told (for with the utmost
pains to miss it would have been hard to do so under the circumstanecs),
then Tissaphernes with all speed retired out of range, the other regiments
following suit; and for the rest of the day the one party advanced and the
other followed. But now the Asiatics had ceased to be dangerous with their
sharpshooting. For the Rhodians could reach further than the Persian
slingers, or, indeed, than most of the bowmen. The Persian bows are of
great size, so that the Cretans found the arrows which were picked up
serviceable, and persevered in using their enemies' arrows, and practised
shooting with them, letting them fly upwards to a great height (6). There
were also plenty of bowstrings found in the villages—and lead, which
they turned to account for their slings. As a result of this day, then,
the Hellenes chancing upon some villages had no sooner encamped than the
barbarians fell back, having had distinctly the worst of it in the
skirmishing.</p>
<p>(5) The best MSS read {Skuthai}, Scythians; if this is correct, it is<br/>
only the technical name for "archers." Cf. Arrian, "Tact." ii. 13.<br/>
The police at Athens were technically so called, as being composed<br/>
of Scythian slaves. Cf. Aristoph. "Thesm." 1017.<br/>
<br/>
(6) I.e., in practising, in order to get the maximum range they let<br/>
fly the arrows, not horizontally, but up into the air. Sir W.<br/>
Raleigh (Hist. of the World, III. x. 8) says that Xenophon<br/>
"trained his archers to short compass, who had been accustomed to<br/>
the point blank," but this is surely not Xenophon's meaning.<br/></p>
<p>The next day was a day of inaction: they halted and took in supplies, as
there was much corn in the villages; but on the day following, the march
was continued through the plain (of the Tigris), and Tissaphernes still
hung on their skirts with his skirmishers. And now it was that the
Hellenes discovered the defect of marching in a square with an enemy
following. As a matter of necessity, whenever the wings of an army so
disposed draw together, either where a road narrows, or hills close in, or
a bridge has to be crossed, the heavy infantry cannot help being squeezed
out of their ranks, and march with difficulty, partly from actual
pressure, and partly from the general confusion that ensues. Or, supposing
the wings are again extended, the troops have hardly recovered from their
former distress before they are pulled asunder, and there is a wide space
between the wings, and the men concerned lose confidence in themselves,
especially with an enemy close behind. What happened, when a bridge had to
be crossed or other passage effected, was, that each unit of the force
pressed on in anxiety to get over first, and at these moments it was easy
for the enemy to make an attack. The generals accordingly, having
recognised the defect, set about curing it. To do so, they made six lochi,
or divisions of a hundred men apiece, each of which had its own set of
captains and under-officers in command of half and quarter companies. It
was the duty of these new companies, during a march, whenever the flanks
needed to close in, to fall back to the rear, so as to disencumber the
wings. This they did by wheeling clear of them. When the sides of the
oblong again extended, they filled up the interstices, if the gap were
narrow, by columns of companies, if broader, by columns of half-companies,
or, if broader still, by columns of quarter-companies, so that the space
between was always filled up. If again it were necessary to effect a
passage by bridge or otherwise, there was no confusion, the several
companies crossing in turns; or, if the occasion arose to form in line of
battle, these companies came up to the front and fell in (7).</p>
<p>(7) In the passage above I have translated {lokhoi} companies, and, as<br/>
usual, {lokhagoi} captains. The half company is technically called<br/>
a pentecostys, and a quarter company an enomoty, and the officers<br/>
in charge of them respectively penteconter and enomotarch. These<br/>
would be equivalent nearly to our subalterns and sergeants, and in<br/>
the evolutions described would act as guides and markers in charge<br/>
of their sections. Grote thinks there were six companies formed on<br/>
each flank—twelve in all. See "Hist. of Greece," vol. ix. p. 123,<br/>
note (1st ed.)<br/></p>
<p>In this way they advanced four stages, but ere the fifth was completed,
they came in sight of a palace of some sort, with villages clustered round
it; they could further see that the road leading to this place pursued its
course over high undulating hillocks, the spur of the mountain range,
under which lay the village. These knolls were a welcome sight to the
Hellenes, naturally enough, as the enemy were cavalry. However, when they
had issued from the plain and ascended the first crest, and were in the
act of descending it so as to mount the next, at this juncture the
barbarians came upon them. From the high ground down the sheer steep they
poured a volley of darts, slingstones, and arrows, which they discharged
"under the lash (8)," wounding many, until they got the better of the
Hellenic light troops, and drove them for shelter behind the heavy
infantry, so that this day that arm was altogether useless, huddling in
the mob of sutlers, both slingers and archers alike.</p>
<p>(8) I.e. the Persian leaders were seen flogging their men to the<br/>
attack. Cf. Herod. vii. 22. 3.<br/></p>
<p>But when the Hellenes, being so pressed, made an attempt to pursue, they
could barely scale to the summit, being heavy-armed troops, while the
enemy as lightly sprung away; and they suffered similarly in retiring to
join the rest of the army. And then, on the second hill, the whole had to
be gone through again; so that when it came to the third hillock, they
determined not to move the main body of troops from their position until
they had brought up a squadron of light infantry from the right flank of
the square to a point on the mountain range. When this detachment were
once posted above their pursuers, the latter desisted from attacking the
main body in its descent, for fear of being cut off and finding themselves
between two assailants. Thus the rest of the day they moved on in two
divisions: one set keeping to the road by the hillocks, the other marching
parallel on the higher level along the mountains; and thus they reached
the villages and appointed eight surgeons to attend to the many wounded.</p>
<p>Here they halted three days for the sake of the wounded chiefly, while a
further inducement was the plentiful supply of provisions which they
found, wheat and wine, and large stores of barley laid up for horses.
These supplies had been collected by the ruling satrap of the country. On
the fourth day they began their descent into the plain; but when
Tissaphernes overtook them, necessity taught them to camp in the first
village they caught sight of, and give over the attempt of marching and
fighting simultaneously, as so many were hors de combat, being either on
the list of wounded themselves, or else engaged in carrying the wounded,
or laden with the heavy arms of those so occupied. But when they were once
encamped, and the barbarians, advancing upon the village, made an attempt
to harass them with their sharp-shooters, the superiority of the Hellenes
was pronounced. To sustain a running fight with an enemy constantly
attacking was one thing; to keep him at arm's length from a fixed base of
action another: and the difference was much in their favour.</p>
<p>But when it was late afternoon, the time had come for the enemy to
withdraw, since the habit of the barbarian was never to encamp within
seven or eight miles of the Hellenic camp. This he did in apprehension of
a night attack, for a Persian army is good for nothing at night. Their
horses are haltered, and, as a rule, hobbled as well, to prevent their
escaping, as they might if loose; so that, if any alarm occurs, the
trooper has to saddle and bridle his horse, and then he must put on his
own cuirass, and then mount—all which performances are difficult at
night and in the midst of confusion. For this reason they always encamped
at a distance from the Hellenes.</p>
<p>When the Hellenes perceived that they were preparing to retire, and that
the order was being given, the herald's cry, "Pack up for starting," might
be heard before the enemy was fairly out of earshot. For a while the
Asiatics paused, as if unwilling to be gone; but as night closed in, off
they went, for it did not suit their notions of expediency to set off on a
march and arrive by night. And now, when the Hellenes saw that they were
really and clearly gone, they too broke up their camp and pursued their
march till they had traversed seven and a half miles. Thus the distance
between the two armies grew to be so great, that the next day the enemy
did not appear at all, nor yet on the third day; but on the fourth the
barbarians had pushed on by a forced night march and occupied a commanding
position on the right, where the Hellenes had to pass. It was a narrow
mountain spur (9) overhanging the descent into the plain.</p>
<p>(9) Lit. "a mere nail tip."<br/></p>
<p>But when Cheirisophus saw that this ridge was occupied, he summoned
Xenophon from the rear, bidding him at the same time to bring up peltasts
to the front. That Xenophon hesitated to do, for Tissaphernes and his
whole army were coming up and were well within sight. Galloping up to the
front himself, he asked: "Why do you summon me?" The other answered him:
"The reason is plain; look yonder; this crest which overhangs our descent
has been occupied. There is no passing, until we have dislodged these
fellows; why have you not brought up the light infantry?" Xenophon
explained: he had not thought it desirable to leave the rear unprotected,
with an enemy appearing in the field of view. "However, it is time," he
added, "to decide how we are to dislodge these fellows from the crest." At
this moment his eye fell on the peak of the mountain, rising immediately
above their army, and he could see an approach leading from it to the
crest in question where the enemy lay. He exclaimed: "The best thing we
can do, Cheirisophus, is to make a dash at the height itself, and with
what speed we may. If we take it, the party in command of the road will
never be able to stop. If you like, stay in command of the army, and I
will go; or, if you prefer, do you go to the mountain, and I will stay
here."—"I leave it to you," Cheirisophus answered, "to choose which
you like best." Xenophon remarking, "I am the younger," elected to go; but
he stipulated for a detachment from the front to accompany him, since it
was a long way to fetch up troops from the rear. Accordingly Cheirisophus
furnished him with the light infantry from the front, reoccupying their
place by those from the centre. He also gave him, to form part of the
detachment, the three hundred of the picked corps (10) under his own
command at the head of the square.</p>
<p>(10) Some think that these three hundred are three of the detached<br/>
companies described above; others, that they were a picked corps<br/>
in attendance on the commander-in-chief.<br/></p>
<p>They set out from the low ground with all the haste imaginable. But the
enemy in position on the crest no sooner perceived their advance upon the
summit of the pass than they themselves set off full tilt in a rival race
for the summit too. Hoarse were the shouts of the Hellenic troops as the
men cheered their companions forwards, and hoarse the answering shouts
from the troops of Tissaphernes, urging on theirs. Xenophon, mounted on
his charger, rode beside his men, and roused their ardour the while. "Now
for it, brave sirs; bethink you that this race is for Hellas!—now or
never!—to find your boys, your wives; one small effort, and the rest
of the march we shall pursue in peace, without ever a blow to strike; now
for it." But Soteridas the Sicyonian said: "We are not on equal terms,
Xenophon; you are mounted on a horse; I can hardly get along with my
shield to carry;" and he, on hearing the reproach, leapt from his horse.
In another instant he had pushed Soteridas from the ranks, snatched from
him his shield, and begun marching as quickly as he might under the
circumstances, having his horseman's cuirass to carry as well, so that he
was sore pressed; but he continued to cheer on the troops: exhorting those
in front to lead on and the men toiling behind to follow up (11).
Soteridas was not spared by the rest of the men. They gave him blows, they
pelted him, they showered him with abuse, till they compelled him to take
back his shield and march on; and the other, remounting, led them on
horseback as long as the footing held; but when the ground became too
steep, he left his horse and pressed forward on foot, and so they found
themselves on the summit before the enemy.</p>
<p>(11) Some MSS. "and the men behind to pass him by, as he could but ill<br/>
keep up the pace."<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0026" id="link2H_4_0026"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>There and then the barbarians turned and fled as best they might, and the
Hellenes held the summit, while the troops with Tissaphernes and Ariaeus
turned aside and disappeared by another road. The main body with
Cheirisophus made its way down into the plain and encamped in a village
filled with good things of divers sorts. Nor did this village stand alone;
there were others not a few in this plain of the Tigris equally
overflowing with plenty. It was now afternoon; and all of a sudden the
enemy came in sight on the plain, and succeeded in cutting down some of
the Hellenes belonging to parties who were scattered over the flat land in
quest of spoil. Indeed, many herds of cattle had been caught whilst being
conveyed across to the other side of the river. And now Tissaphernes and
his troops made an attempt to burn the villages, and some of the Hellenes
were disposed to take the matter deeply to heart, being apprehensive that
they might not know where to get provisions if the enemy burnt the
villages.</p>
<p>Cheirisophus and his men were returning from their sally of defence when
Xenophon and his party descended, and the latter rode along the ranks as
the rescuing party came up, and greeted them thus: "Do you not see, men of
Hellas, they admit that the country is now ours; what they stipulated
against our doing when they made the treaty, viz. that we were not to fire
the king's country, they are now themselves doing—setting fire to it
as if it were not their own. But we will be even with them; if they leave
provisions for themselves anywhere, there also shall they see us
marching;" and, turning to Cheirisophus, he added: "But it strikes me, we
should sally forth against these incendiaries and protect our country."
Cheirisophus retorted: "That is not quite my view; I say, let us do a
little burning ourselves, and they will cease all the quicker."</p>
<p>When they had got back to the villages, while the rest were busy about
provisions, the generals and officers met: and here there was deep
despondency. For on the one side were exceedingly high mountains; on the
other a river of such depth that they failed to reach the bottom with
their spears. In the midst of their perplexities, a Rhodian came up with a
proposal, as follows: "I am ready, sirs to carry you across, four thousand
heavy infantry at a time; if you will furnish me with what I need and give
me a talent into the bargain for my pains." When asked, "What shall you
need?" he replied: "Two thousand wine-skins. I see there are plenty of
sheep and goats and asses. They have only to be flayed, and their skins
inflated, and they will readily give us a passage. I shall want also the
straps which you use for the baggage animals. With these I shall couple
the skins to one another; then I shall moor each skin by attaching stones
and letting them down like anchors into the water. Then I shall carry them
across, and when I have fastened the links at both ends, I shall place
layers of wood on them and a coating of earth on the top of that. You will
see in a minute that there's no danger of your drowning, for every skin
will be able to support a couple of men without sinking, and the wood and
earth will prevent your slipping off."</p>
<p>The generals thought it a pretty invention enough, but its realisation
impracticable, for on the other side were masses of cavalry posted and
ready to bar the passage; who, to begin with, would not suffer the first
detachment of crossers to carry out any item of the programme.</p>
<p>Under these circumstances, the next day they turned right about face, and
began retracing their steps in the direction of Babylon to the unburnt
villages, having previously set fire to those they left, so that the enemy
did not ride up to them, but stood and stared, all agape to see in what
direction the Hellenes would betake themselves and what they were minded
to do. Here, again, while the rest of the soldiers were busy about
provisions, the generals and officers met in council, and after collecting
the prisoners together, submitted them to a cross-examination touching the
whole country round, the names, and so forth, of each district.</p>
<p>The prisoners informed them that the regions south, through which they had
come, belonged to the district towards Babylon and Media; the road east
led to Susa and Ecbatana, where the king is said to spend summer and
spring; crossing the river, the road west led to Lydia and Ionia; and the
part through the mountains facing towards the Great Bear, led, they said,
to the Carduchians (1). They were a people, so said the prisoners,
dwelling up on the hills, addicted to war, and not subject to the king; so
much so that once, when a royal army one hundred and twenty thousand
strong had invaded them, not a man came back, owing to the intricacies of
the country. Occasionally, however, they made truce or treaty with the
satrap in the plain, and, for the nonce, there would be intercourse: "they
will come in and out amongst us," "and we will go in and out amongst
them," said the captives.</p>
<p>(1) See Dr. Kiepert, "Man. Anc. Geog." (Mr. G. A. Macmillan) iv. 47.<br/>
The Karduchians or Kurds belong by speech to the Iranian stock,<br/>
forming in fact their farthest outpost to the west, little given<br/>
to agriculture, but chiefly to the breeding of cattle. Their name,<br/>
pronounced Kardu by the ancient Syrians and Assyrians, Kordu by<br/>
the Armenians (plural Kordukh), first appears in its narrower<br/>
sense in western literature in the pages of the eye-witness<br/>
Xenophon as {Kardoukhoi}. Later writers knew of a small kingdom<br/>
here at the time of the Roman occupation, ruled by native princes,<br/>
who after Tigranes II (about 80 B.C.) recognised the overlordship<br/>
of the Armenian king. Later it became a province of the Sassanid<br/>
kingdom, and as such was in 297 A.D. handed over among the<br/>
regiones transtigritanae to the Roman empire, but in 364 was again<br/>
ceded to Persia.<br/></p>
<p>After hearing these statements, the generals seated apart those who
claimed to have any special knowledge of the country in any direction;
they put them to sit apart without making it clear which particular route
they intended to take. Finally the resolution to which they came was that
they must force a passage through the hills into the territory of the
Kurds; since, according to what their informants told them, when they had
once passed these, they would find themselves in Armenia—the rich
and large territory governed by Orontas; and from Armenia, it would be
easy to proceed in any direction whatever. Thereupon they offered
sacrifice, so as to be ready to start on the march as soon as the right
moment appeared to have arrived. Their chief fear was that the high pass
over the mountains must be occupied in advance: and a general order was
issued, that after supper every one should get his kit together for
starting, and repose, in readiness to follow as soon as the word of
command was given.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0027" id="link2H_4_0027"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK IV </h2>
<p>(In the preceding portion of the narrative a full account is<br/>
given of the incidents of the march up to the battle, and of<br/>
the occurrences after the battle during the truce which was<br/>
established between the king and the Hellenes, who marched up<br/>
with Cyrus, and thirdly, of the fighting to which the Hellenes<br/>
were exposed, after the king and Tissaphernes had broken the<br/>
treaty, while a Persian army hung on their rear. Having<br/>
finally reached a point at which the Tigris was absolutely<br/>
impassable owing to its depth and breadth, while there was no<br/>
passage along the bank itself, and the Carduchian hills hung<br/>
sheer over the river, the generals took the resolution above<br/>
mentioned of forcing a passage through the mountains. The<br/>
information derived from the prisoners taken along the way led<br/>
them to believe that once across the Carduchian mountains they<br/>
would have the choice either of crossing the Tigris—if they<br/>
liked to do so—at its sources in Armenia, or of going round<br/>
them, if so they preferred. Report further said that the<br/>
sources of the Euphrates also were not far from those of the<br/>
Tigris, and this is actually the case. The advance into the<br/>
country of the Carduchians was conducted with a view partly to<br/>
secrecy, and partly to speed, so as to effect their entry<br/>
before the enemy could occupy the passes.)<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0028" id="link2H_4_0028"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>It was now about the last watch, and enough of the night remained to allow
them to cross the valley under cover of darkness; when, at the word of
command, they rose and set off on their march, reaching the mountains at
daybreak. At this stage of the march Cheirisophus, at the head of his own
division, with the whole of the light troops, led the van, while Xenophon
followed behind with the heavy infantry of the rearguard, but without any
light troops, since there seemed to be no danger of pursuit or attack from
the rear, while they were making their way up hill. Cheirisophus reached
the summit without any of the enemy perceiving him. Then he led on slowly,
and the rest of the army followed, wave upon wave, cresting the summit and
descending into the villages which nestled in the hollows and recesses of
the hills.</p>
<p>Thereupon the Carduchians abandoned their dwelling places, and with their
wives and children fled to the mountains; so there was plenty of
provisions to be got for the mere trouble of taking, and the homesteads
too were well supplied with a copious store of bronze vessels and utensils
which the Hellenes kept their hands off, abstaining at the same time from
all pursuit of the folk themselves, gently handling them, in hopes that
the Carduchians might be willing to give them friendly passage through
their country, since they too were enemies of the king: only they helped
themselves to such provisions as fell in their way, which indeed was a
sheer necessity. But the Carduchians neither gave ear, when they called to
them, nor showed any other friendly sign; and now, as the last of the
Hellenes descended into the villages from the pass, they were already in
the dark, since, owing to the narrowness of the road, the whole day had
been spent in the ascent and descent. At that instant a party of the
Carduchians, who had collected, made an attack on the hindmost men,
killing some and wounding others with stones and arrows—though it
was quite a small body who attacked. The fact was, the approach of the
Hellenic army had taken them by surprise; if, however, they had mustered
in larger force at this time, the chances are that a large portion of the
army would have been annihilated. As it was, they got into quarters, and
bivouacked in the villages that night, while the Carduchians kept many
watch-fires blazing in a circle on the mountains, and kept each other in
sight all round.</p>
<p>But with the dawn the generals and officers of the Hellenes met and
resolved to proceed, taking only the necessary number of stout baggage
animals, and leaving the weaklings behind. They resolved further to let go
free all the lately-captured slaves in the host; for the pace of the march
was necessarily rendered slow by the quantity of animals and prisoners,
and the number of non-combatants in attendance on these was excessive,
while, with such a crowd of human beings to satisfy, twice the amount of
provisions had to be procured and carried. These resolutions passed, they
caused a proclamation by herald to be made for their enforcement.</p>
<p>When they had breakfasted and the march recommenced, the generals planted
themselves a little to one side in a narrow place, and when they found any
of the aforesaid slaves or other property still retained, they confiscated
them. The soldiers yielded obedience, except where some smuggler, prompted
by desire of a good-looking boy or woman, managed to make off with his
prize. During this day they contrived to get along after a fashion, now
fighting and now resting. But on the next day they were visited by a great
storm, in spite of which they were obliged to continue the march, owing to
insufficiency of provisions. Cheirisophus was as usual leading in front,
while Xenophon headed the rearguard, when the enemy began a violent and
sustained attack. At one narrow place after another they came up quite
close, pouring in volleys of arrows and slingstones, so that the Hellenes
had no choice but to make sallies in pursuit and then again recoil, making
but very little progress. Over and over again Xenophon would send an order
to the front to slacken pace, when the enemy were pressing their attack
severely. As a rule, when the word was so passed up, Cheirisophus
slackened; but sometimes instead of slackening, Cheirisophus quickened,
sending down a counter-order to the rear to follow on quickly. It was
clear that there was something or other happening, but there was no time
to go to the front and discover the cause of the hurry. Under the
circumstances the march, at any rate in the rear, became very like a rout,
and here a brave man lost his life, Cleonymus the Laconian, shot with an
arrow in the ribs right through shield and corselet, as also Basias, an
Arcadian, shot clean through the head.</p>
<p>As soon as they reached a halting-place, Xenophon, without more ado, came
up to Cheirisophus, and took him to task for not having waited, "whereby,"
he said, "we were forced to fight and flee at the same moment; and now it
has cost us the lives of two fine fellows; they are dead, and we were not
able to pick up their bodies or bury them." Cheirisophus answered: "Look
up there," pointing as he spoke to the mountain, "do you see how
inaccessible it all is? only this one road, which you see, going straight
up, and on it all that crowd of men who have seized and are guarding the
single exit. That is why I hastened on, and why I could not wait for you,
hoping to be beforehand with them yonder in seizing the pass: the guides
we have got say there is no other way." And Xenophon replied: "But I have
got two prisoners also; the enemy annoyed us so much that we laid an
ambuscade for them, which also gave us time to recover our breaths; we
killed some of them, and did our best to catch one or two alive—for
this very reason—that we might have guides who knew the country, to
depend upon."</p>
<p>The two were brought up at once and questioned separately: "Did they know
of any other road than the one visible?" The first said no; and in spite
of all sorts of terrors applied to extract a better answer—"no," he
persisted. When nothing could be got out of him, he was killed before the
eyes of his fellow. This latter then explained: "Yonder man said, he did
not know, because he has got a daughter married to a husband in those
parts. I can take you," he added, "by a good road, practicable even for
beasts." And when asked whether there was any point on it difficult to
pass, he replied that there was a col which it would be impossible to pass
unless it were occupied in advance.</p>
<p>Then it was resolved to summon the officers of the light infantry and some
of those of the heavy infantry, and to acquaint them with the state of
affairs, and ask them whether any of them were minded to distinguish
themselves, and would step forward as volunteers on an expedition. Two or
three heavy infantry soldiers stepped forward at once—two Arcadians,
Aristonymus of Methydrium, and Agasias of Stymphalus—and in
emulation of these, a third, also an Arcadian, Callimachus from Parrhasia,
who said he was ready to go, and would get volunteers from the whole army
to join him. "I know," he added, "there will be no lack of youngsters to
follow where I lead." After that they asked, "Were there any captains of
light infantry willing to accompany the expedition?" Aristeas, a Chian,
who on several occasions proved his usefulness to the army on such
service, volunteered.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0029" id="link2H_4_0029"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>It was already late afternoon, when they ordered the storming party to
take a snatch of food and set off; then they bound the guide and handed
him over to them. The agreement was, that if they succeeded in taking the
summit they were to guard the position that night, and at daybreak to give
a signal by bugle. At this signal the party on the summit were to attack
the enemy in occupation of the visible pass, while the generals with the
main body would bring up their succours; making their way up with what
speed they might. With this understanding, off they set, two thousand
strong; and there was a heavy downpour of rain, but Xenophon, with his
rearguard, began advancing to the visible pass, so that the enemy might
fix his attention on this road, and the party creeping round might, as
much as possible, elude observation. Now when the rearguard, so advancing,
had reached a ravine which they must cross in order to strike up the
steep, at that instant the barbarians began rolling down great boulders,
each a wagon load (1), some larger, some smaller; against the rocks they
crashed and splintered flying like slingstones in every direction—so
that it was absolutely out of the question even to approach the entrance
of the pass. Some of the officers finding themselves baulked at this
point, kept trying other ways, nor did they desist till darkness set in;
and then, when they thought they would not be seen retiring, they returned
to supper. Some of them who had been on duty in the rearguard had had no
breakfast (it so happened). However, the enemy never ceased rolling down
their stones all through the night, as was easy to infer from the booming
sound.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. several ton weight.<br/></p>
<p>The party with the guide made a circuit and surprised the enemy's guards
seated round their fire, and after killing some, and driving out the rest,
took their places, thinking that they were in possession of the height. As
a matter of fact they were not, for above them lay a breast-like hill (2)
skirted by the narrow road on which they had found the guards seated.
Still, from the spot in question there was an approach to the enemy, who
were seated on the pass before mentioned.</p>
<p>(2) Or, "mamelon."<br/></p>
<p>Here then they passed the night, but at the first glimpse of dawn they
marched stealthily and in battle order against the enemy. There was a
mist, so that they could get quite close without being observed. But as
soon as they caught sight of one another, the trumpet sounded, and with a
loud cheer they rushed upon the fellows, who did not wait their coming,
but left the road and made off; with the loss of only a few lives however,
so nimble were they. Cheirisophus and his men, catching the sound of the
bugle, charged up by the well-marked road, while others of the generals
pushed their way up by pathless routes, where each division chanced to be;
the men mounting as they were best able, and hoisting one another up by
means of their spears; and these were the first to unite with the party
who had already taken the position by storm. Xenophon, with the rearguard,
followed the path which the party with the guide had taken, since it was
easiest for the beasts of burthen; one half of his men he had posted in
rear of the baggage animals; the other half he had with himself. In their
course they encountered a crest above the road, occupied by the enemy,
whom they must either dislodge or be themselves cut off from the rest of
the Hellenes. The men by themselves could have taken the same route as the
rest, but the baggage animals could not mount by any other way than this.</p>
<p>Here then, with shouts of encouragement to each other, they dashed at the
hill with their storming columns, not from all sides, but leaving an
avenue of escape for the enemy, if he chose to avail himself of it. For a
while, as the men scrambled up where each best could, the natives kept up
a fire of arrows and darts, yet did not receive them at close quarters,
but presently left the position in flight. No sooner, however, were the
Hellenes safely past this crest, than they came in sight of another in
front of them, also occupied, and deemed it advisable to storm it also.
But now it struck Xenophon that if they left the ridge just taken
unprotected in their rear, the enemy might re-occupy it and attack the
baggage animals as they filed past, presenting a long extended line owing
to the narrowness of the road by which they made their way. To obviate
this, he left some officers in charge of the ridge—Cephisodorus, son
of Cephisophon, an Athenian; Amphicrates, the son of Amphidemus, an
Athenian; and Archagoras, an Argive exile—while he in person with
the rest of the men attacked the second ridge; this they took in the same
fashion, only to find that they had still a third knoll left, far the
steepest of the three. This was none other than the mamelon mentioned as
above the outpost, which had been captured over their fire by the
volunteer storming party in the night. But when the Hellenes were close,
the natives, to the astonishment of all, without a struggle deserted the
knoll. It was conjectured that they had left their position from fear of
being encircled and besieged, but the fact was that they, from their
higher ground, had been able to see what was going on in the rear, and had
all made off in this fashion to attack the rearguard.</p>
<p>So then Xenophon, with the youngest men, scaled up to the top, leaving
orders to the rest to march on slowly, so as to allow the hindmost
companies to unite with them; they were to advance by the road, and when
they reached the level to ground arms (3). Meanwhile the Argive Archagoras
arrived, in full flight, with the announcement that they had been
dislodged from the first ridge, and that Cephisodorus and Amphicrates were
slain, with a number of others besides, all in fact who had not jumped
down the crags and so reached the rearguard. After this achievement the
barbarians came to a crest facing the mamelon, and Xenophon held a
colloquy with them by means of an interpreter, to negotiate a truce, and
demanded back the dead bodies. These they agreed to restore if he would
not burn their houses, and to these terms Xenophon agreed. Meanwhile, as
the rest of the army filed past, and the colloquy was proceeding, all the
people of the place had time to gather gradually, and the enemy formed;
and as soon as the Hellenes began to descend from the mamelon to join the
others where the troops were halted, on rushed the foe, in full force,
with hue and cry. They reached the summit of the mamelon from which
Xenophon was descending, and began rolling down crags. One man's leg was
crushed to pieces. Xenophon was left by his shield-bearer, who carried off
his shield, but Eurylochus of Lusia (4), an Arcadian hoplite, ran up to
him, and threw his shield in front to protect both of them; so the two
together beat a retreat, and so too the rest, and joined the serried ranks
of the main body.</p>
<p>(3) To take up position.<br/>
<br/>
(4) I.e. of Lusi (or Lusia), a town (or district) in Northern Arcadia.<br/></p>
<p>After this the whole Hellenic force united, and took up their quarters
there in numerous beautiful dwellings, with an ample store of provisions,
for there was wine so plentiful that they had it in cemented cisterns.
Xenophon and Cheirisophus arranged to recover the dead, and in return
restored the guide; afterwards they did everything for the dead, according
to the means at their disposal, with the customary honours paid to good
men.</p>
<p>Next day they set off without a guide; and the enemy, by keeping up a
continuous battle and occupying in advance every narrow place, obstructed
passage after passage. Accordingly, whenever the van was obstructed,
Xenophon, from behind, made a dash up the hills and broke the barricade,
and freed the vanguard by endeavouring to get above the obstructing enemy.
Whenever the rear was the point attacked, Cheirisophus, in the same way,
made a detour, and by endeavouring to mount higher than the barricaders,
freed the passage for the rear rank; and in this way, turn and turn about,
they rescued each other, and paid unflinching attention to their mutual
needs. At times it happened that, the relief party having mounted,
encountered considerable annoyance in their descent from the barbarians,
who were so agile that they allowed them to come up quite close, before
they turned back, and still escaped, partly no doubt because the only
weapons they had to carry were bows and slings.</p>
<p>They were, moreover, excellent archers, using bows nearly three cubits
long and arrows more than two cubits. When discharging the arrow, they
draw the string by getting a purchase with the left foot planted forward
on the lower end of the bow. The arrows pierced through shield and
cuirass, and the Hellenes, when they got hold of them, used them as
javelins, fitting them to their thongs. In these districts the Cretans
were highly serviceable. They were under the command of Stratocles, a
Cretan.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0030" id="link2H_4_0030"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>During this day they bivouacked in the villages which lie above the plain
of the river Centrites (1), which is about two hundred feet broad. It is
the frontier river between Armenia and the country of the Carduchians.
Here the Hellenes recruited themselves, and the sight of the plain filled
them with joy, for the river was but six or seven furlongs distant from
the mountains of the Carduchians. For the moment then they bivouacked
right happily; they had their provisions, they had also many memories of
the labours that were now passed; seeing that the last seven days spent in
traversing the country of the Carduchians had been one long continuous
battle, which had cost them more suffering than the whole of their
troubles at the hands of the king and Tissaphernes put together. As though
they were truly quit of them for ever, they laid their heads to rest in
sweet content.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. the Eastern Tigris.<br/></p>
<p>But with the morrow's dawn they espied horsemen at a certain point across
the river, armed cap-a-pie, as if they meant to dispute the passage.
Infantry, too, drawn up in line upon the banks above the cavalry,
threatened to prevent them debouching into Armenia. These troops were
Armenian and Mardian and Chaldaean mercenaries belonging to Orontas and
Artuchas. The last of the three, the Chaldaeans, were said to be a free
and brave set of people. They were armed with long wicker shields and
lances. The banks before named on which they were drawn up were a hundred
yards or more distant from the river, and the single road which was
visible was one leading upwards and looking like a regular artificially
constructed highway. At this point the Hellenes endeavoured to cross, but
on their making the attempt the water proved to be more than breast-deep,
and the river bed was rough with great slippery stones, and as to holding
their arms in the water, it was out of the question—the stream swept
them away—or if they tried to carry them over the head, the body was
left exposed to the arrows and other missiles; accordingly they turned
back and encamped there by the bank of the river.</p>
<p>At the point where they had themselves been last night, up on the
mountains, they could see the Carduchians collected in large numbers and
under arms. A shadow of deep despair again descended on their souls,
whichever way they turned their eyes—in front lay the river so
difficult to ford; over, on the other side, a new enemy threatening to bar
the passage; on the hills behind, the Carduchians ready to fall upon their
rear should they once again attempt to cross. Thus for this day and night
they halted, sunk in perplexity. But Xenophon had a dream. In his sleep he
thought that he was bound in fetters, but these, of their own accord, fell
from off him, so that he was loosed, and could stretch his legs as freely
as he wished (2). So at the first glimpse of daylight he came to
Cheirisophus and told him that he had hopes that all things would go well,
and related to him his dream.</p>
<p>(2) It is impossible to give the true sense and humour of the passage<br/>
in English, depending, as it does, on the double meaning of<br/>
{diabainein} (1) to cross (a river), (2) to stride or straddle (of<br/>
the legs). The army is unable to cross the Centrites; Xenophon<br/>
dreams that he is fettered, but the chains drop off his legs and<br/>
he is able to stride as freely as ever; next morning the two young<br/>
men come to him with the story how they have found themselves able<br/>
to walk cross the river instead of having to swim it. It is<br/>
obvious to Xenophon that the dream is sent from Heaven.<br/></p>
<p>The other was well pleased, and with the first faint gleam of dawn the
generals all were present and did sacrifice; and the victims were
favourable in the first essay. Retiring from the sacrifice, the generals
and officers issued an order to the troops to take their breakfasts; and
while Xenophon was taking his, two young men came running up to him, for
every one knew that, breakfasting or supping, he was always accessible, or
that even if asleep any one was welcome to awaken him who had anything to
say bearing on the business of war. What the two young men had at this
time to say was that they had been collecting brushwood for fire, and had
presently espied on the opposite side, in among some rocks which came down
to the river's brink, an old man and some women and little girls
depositing, as it would appear, bags of clothes in a cavernous rock. When
they saw them, it struck them that it was safe to cross; in any case the
enemy's cavalry could not approach at this point. So they stripped naked,
expecting to have to swim for it, and with their long knives in their
hands began crossing, but going forward crossed without being wet up to
the fork. Once across they captured the clothes, and came back again.</p>
<p>Accordingly Xenophon at once poured out a libation himself, and bade the
two young fellows fill the cup and pray to the gods, who showed to him
this vision and to them a passage, to bring all other blessings for them
to accomplishment. When he had poured out the libation, he at once led the
two young men to Cheirisophus, and they repeated to him their story.
Cheirisophus, on hearing it, offered libations also, and when they had
performed them, they sent a general order to the troops to pack up ready
for starting, while they themselves called a meeting of the generals and
took counsel how they might best effect a passage, so as to overpower the
enemy in front without suffering any loss from the men behind. And they
resolved that Cheirisophus should lead the van and cross with half the
army, the other half still remaining behind under Xenophon, while the
baggage animals and the mob of sutlers were to cross between the two
divisions.</p>
<p>When all was duly ordered the move began, the young men pioneering them,
and keeping the river on their left. It was about four furlongs' march to
the crossing, and as they moved along the bank, the squadrons of cavalry
kept pace with them on the opposite side.</p>
<p>But when they had reached a point in a line with the ford, and the
cliff-like banks of the river, they grounded arms, and first Cheirisophus
himself placed a wreath upon his brows, and throwing off his cloak (3),
resumed his arms, passing the order to all the rest to do the same, and
bade the captains form their companies in open order in deep columns, some
to left and some to right of himself. Meanwhile the soothsayers were
slaying a victim over the river, and the enemy were letting fly their
arrows and slingstones; but as yet they were out of range. As soon as the
victims were favourable, all the soldiers began singing the battle hymn,
and with the notes of the paean mingled the shouting of the men
accompanied by the shriller chant of the women, for there were many women
(4) in the camp.</p>
<p>(3) Or, "having doffed it," i.e. the wreath, an action which the<br/>
soldiers would perform symbolically, if Grote is right in his<br/>
interpretation of the passage, "Hist. of Greece," vol. ix. p. 137.<br/>
<br/>
(4) Lit. "comrade-women."<br/></p>
<p>So Cheirisophus with his detachment stepped in. But Xenophon, taking the
most active-bodied of the rearguard, began running back at full speed to
the passage facing the egress into the hills of Armenia, making a feint of
crossing at that point to intercept their cavalry on the river bank. The
enemy, seeing Cheirisophus's detachment easily crossing the stream, and
Xenophon's men racing back, were seized with the fear of being
intercepted, and fled at full speed in the direction of the road which
emerges from the stream. But when they were come opposite to it they raced
up hill towards their mountains. Then Lycius, who commanded the cavalry,
and Aeschines, who was in command of the division of light infantry
attached to Cheirisophus, no sooner saw them fleeing so lustily than they
were after them, and the soldiers shouted not to fall behind (5), but to
follow them right up to the mountains. Cheirisophus, on getting across,
forbore to pursue the cavalry, but advanced by the bluffs which reached to
the river to attack the enemy overhead. And these, seeing their own
cavalry fleeing, seeing also the heavy infantry advancing upon them,
abandoned the heights above the river.</p>
<p>(5) Or, "to stick tight to them and not to be outdone"; or, as others<br/>
understand, "the (infantry) soldiers clamoured not to be left<br/>
behind, but to follow them up into the mountains."<br/></p>
<p>Xenophon, as soon as he saw that things were going well on the other side,
fell back with all speed to join the troops engaged in crossing, for by
this time the Carduchians were well in sight, descending into the plain to
attack their rear.</p>
<p>Cheirisophus was in possession of the higher ground, and Lycius, with his
little squadron, in an attempt to follow up the pursuit, had captured some
stragglers of their baggage-bearers, and with them some handsome apparel
and drinking-cups. The baggage animals of the Hellenes and the mob of
non-combatants were just about to cross, when Xenonphon turned his troops
right about to face the Carduchians. Vis-a-vis he formed his line, passing
the order to the captains each to form his company into sections, and to
deploy them into line by the left, the captains of companies and
lieutenants in command of sections to advance to meet the Carduchians,
while the rear leaders would keep their position facing the river. But
when the Carduchians saw the rearguard so stript of the mass, and looking
now like a mere handful of men, they advanced all the more quickly,
singing certain songs the while. Then, as matters were safe with him,
Cheirisophus sent back the peltasts and slingers and archers to join
Xenophon, with orders to carry out his instructions. They were in the act
of recrossing, when Xenophon, who saw their intention, sent a messenger
across, bidding them wait there at the river's brink without crossing; but
as soon as he and his detachment began to cross they were to step in
facing him in two flanking divisions right and left of them, as if in the
act of crossing; the javelin men with their javelins on the thong, and the
bowmen with their arrows on the string; but they were not to advance far
into the stream. The order passed to his own men was: "Wait till you are
within sling-shot, and the shield rattles, then sound the paean and charge
the enemy. As soon as he turns, and the bugle from the river sounds for
'the attack,' you will face about to the right, the rear rank leading, and
the whole detachment falling back and crossing the river as quickly as
possible, every one preserving his original rank, so as to avoid
tramelling one another: the bravest man is he who gets to the other side
first."</p>
<p>The Carduchians, seeing that the remnant left was the merest handful (for
many even of those whose duty it was to remain had gone off in their
anxiety to protect their beasts of burden, or their personal kit, or their
mistresses), bore down upon them valorously, and opened fire with
slingstones and arrows. But the Hellenes, raising the battle hymn, dashed
at them at a run, and they did not await them; armed well enough for
mountain warfare, and with a view to sudden attack followed by speedy
flight, they were not by any means sufficiently equipped for an engagement
at close quarters. At this instant the signal of the bugle was heard. Its
notes added wings to the flight of the barbarians, but the Hellenes turned
right about in the opposite direction, and betook themselves to the river
with what speed they might. Some of the enemy, here a man and there
another, perceived, and running back to the river, let fly their arrows
and wounded a few; but the majority, even when the Hellenes were well
across, were still to be seen pursuing their flight. The detachment which
came to meet Xenophon's men, carried away by their valour, advanced
further than they had need to, and had to cross back again in the rear of
Xenophon's men, and of these too a few were wounded.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0031" id="link2H_4_0031"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>The passage effected, they fell into line about mid-day, and marched
through Armenian territory, one long plain with smooth rolling hillocks,
not less than five parasangs in distance; for owing to the wars of this
people with the Carduchians there were no villages near the river. The
village eventually reached was large, and possessed a palace belonging to
the satrap, and most of the houses were crowned with turrets; provisions
were plentiful.</p>
<p>From this village they marched two stages—ten parasangs—until
they had surmounted the sources of the river Tigris; and from this point
they marched three stages—fifteen parasangs—to the river
Teleboas. This was a fine stream, though not large, and there were many
villages about it. The district was named Western Armenia. The
lieutenant-governor of it was Tiribazus, the king's friend, and whenever
the latter paid a visit, he alone had the privilege of mounting the king
upon his horse. This officer rode up to the Hellenes with a body of
cavalry, and sending forward an interpreter, stated that he desired a
colloquy with the leaders. The generals resolved to hear what he had to
say; and advancing on their side to within speaking distance, they
demanded what he wanted. He replied that he wished to make a treaty with
them, in accordance with which he on his side would abstain from injuring
the Hellenes, if they would not burn his houses, but merely take such
provisions as they needed. This proposal satisfied the generals, and a
treaty was made on the terms suggested.</p>
<p>From this place they marched three stages—fifteen parasangs—through
plain country, Tiribazus the while keeping close behind with his own
forces more than a mile off. Presently they reached a palace with villages
clustered round about it, which were full of supplies in great variety.
But while they were encamping in the night, there was a heavy fall of
snow, and in the morning it was resolved to billet out the different
regiments, with their generals, throughout the villages. There was no
enemy in sight, and the proceeding seemed prudent, owing to the quantity
of snow. In these quarters they had for provisions all the good things
there are—sacrificial beasts, corn, old wines with an exquisite
bouquet, dried grapes, and vegetables of all sorts. But some of the
stragglers from the camp reported having seen an army, and the blaze of
many watchfires in the night. Accordingly the generals concluded that it
was not prudent to separate their quarters in this way, and a resolution
was passed to bring the troops together again. After that they reunited,
the more so that the weather promised to be fine with a clear sky; but
while they lay there in open quarters, during the night down came so thick
a fall of snow that it completely covered up the stacks of arms and the
men themselves lying down. It cramped and crippled the baggage animals;
and there was great unreadiness to get up, so gently fell the snow as they
lay there warm and comfortable, and formed a blanket, except where it
slipped off the sleepers' shoulders; and it was not until Xenophon roused
himself to get up, and, without his cloak on (1), began to split wood,
that quickly first one and then another got up, and taking the log away
from him, fell to splitting. Thereat the rest followed suit, got up, and
began kindling fire and oiling their bodies, for there was a scented
unguent to be found there in abundance, which they used instead of oil. It
was made from pig's fat, sesame, bitter almonds, and turpentine. There was
a sweet oil also to be found, made of the same ingredients.</p>
<p>(1) Or, as we should say, "in his shirt sleeves." Doubtless he lay<br/>
with his {imation} or cloak loosely wrapped round him; as he<br/>
sprang to his feet he would throw it off, or it would fall off,<br/>
and with the simple inner covering of the {khiton} to protect him,<br/>
and arms free, he fell to chopping the wood, only half clad.<br/></p>
<p>After this it was resolved that they must again separate their quarters
and get under cover in the villages. At this news the soldiers, with much
joy and shouting, rushed upon the covered houses and the provisions; but
all who in their blind folly had set fire to the houses when they left
them before, now paid the penalty in the poor quarters they got. From this
place one night they sent off a party under Democrates, a Temenite (2), up
into the mountains, where the stragglers reported having seen watchfires.
The leader selected was a man whose judgement might be depended upon to
verify the truth of the matter. With a happy gift to distinguish between
fact and fiction, he had often been successfully appealed to. He went and
reported that he had seen no watchfires, but he had got a man, whom he
brought back with him, carrying a Persian bow and quiver, and a sagaris or
battleaxe like those worn by the Amazons. When asked "from what country he
came," the prisoner answered that he was "a Persian, and was going from
the army of Tiribazus to get provisions." They next asked him "how large
the army was, and for what object it had been collected." His answer was
that "it consisted of Tiribazus at the head of his own forces, and aided
by some Chalybian and Taochian mercenaries. Tiribazus had got it
together," he added, "meaning to attack the Hellenes on the high mountain
pass, in a defile which was the sole passage."</p>
<p>(2) Reading {Temeniten}, i.e. a native of Temenus, a district of<br/>
Syracuse; al. {Temniten}, i.e. from Temnus in the Aeolid; al.<br/>
{Temeniten}, i.e. from Temenum in the Argolid.<br/></p>
<p>When the generals heard this news, they resolved to collect the troops,
and they set off at once, taking the prisoner to act as guide, and leaving
a garrison behind with Sophaenetus the Stymphalian in command of those who
remained in the camp. As soon as they had begun to cross the hills, the
light infantry, advancing in front and catching sight of the camp, did not
wait for the heavy infantry, but with a loud shout rushed upon the enemy's
entrenchment. The natives, hearing the din and clatter, did not care to
stop, but took rapidly to their heels. But, for all their expedition, some
of them were killed, and as many as twenty horses were captured, with the
tent of Tiribazus, and its contents, silver-footed couches and goblets,
besides certain persons styling themselves the butlers and bakers. As soon
as the generals of the heavy infantry division had learnt the news, they
resolved to return to the camp with all speed, for fear of an attack being
made on the remnant left behind. The recall was sounded and the retreat
commenced; the camp was reached the same day.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0032" id="link2H_4_0032"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>The next day it was resolved that they should set off with all possible
speed, before the enemy had time to collect and occupy the defile. Having
got their kit and baggage together, they at once began their march through
deep snow with several guides, and, crossing the high pass the same day on
which Tiribazus was to have attacked them, got safely into cantonments.
From this point they marched three desert stages—fifteen parassangs—to
the river Euphrates, and crossed it in water up to the waist. The sources
of the river were reported to be at no great distance. From this place
they marched through deep snow over a flat country three stages—fifteen
parasangs (1). The last of these marches was trying, with the north wind
blowing in their teeth, drying up everything and benumbing the men. Here
one of the seers suggested to them to do sacrifice to Boreas, and
sacrifice was done. The effect was obvious to all in the diminished
fierceness of the blast. But there was six feet of snow, so that many of
the baggage animals and slaves were lost, and about thirty of the men
themselves.</p>
<p>(1) Al. "ten," al. "five."<br/></p>
<p>They spent the whole night in kindling fire; for there was fortunately no
dearth of wood at the halting-place; only those who came late into camp
had no wood. Accordingly those who had arrived a good while and had
kindled fires were not for allowing these late-comers near the fires,
unless they would in return give a share of their corn or of any other
victuals they might have. Here then a general exchange of goods was set
up. Where the fire was kindled the snow melted, and great trenches formed
themselves down to the bare earth, and here it was possible to measure the
depth of the snow.</p>
<p>Leaving these quarters, they marched the whole of the next day over snow,
and many of the men were afflicted with "boulimia" (or hunger-faintness).
Xenophon, who was guarding the rear, came upon some men who had dropt
down, and he did not know what ailed them; but some one who was
experienced in such matters suggested to him that they had evidently got
boulimia; and if they got something to eat, they would revive. Then he
went the round of the baggage train, and laying an embargo on any eatables
he could see, doled out with his own hands, or sent off other able-bodied
agents to distribute to the sufferers, who as soon as they had taken a
mouthful got on their legs again and continued the march.</p>
<p>On and on they marched, and about dusk Cheirisophus reached a village, and
surprised some women and girls who had come from the village to fetch
water at the fountain outside the stockade. These asked them who they
were. The interpreters answered for them in Persian: "They were on their
way from the king to the satrap;" in reply to which the women gave them to
understand that the satrap was not at home, but was away a parasang
farther on. As it was late they entered with the water-carriers within the
stockade to visit the headman of the village. Accordingly Cheirisophus and
as many of the troops as were able got into cantonments there, while the
rest of the soldiers—those namely who were unable to complete the
march—had to spend the night out, without food and without fire;
under the circumstances some of the men perished.</p>
<p>On the heels of the army hung perpetually bands of the enemy, snatching
away disabled baggage animals and fighting with each other over the
carcases. And in its track not seldom were left to their fate disabled
soldiers, struck down with snow-blindness or with toes mortified by
frostbite. As to the eyes, it was some alleviation against the snow to
march with something black before them; for the feet, the only remedy was
to keep in motion without stopping for an instant, and to loose the sandal
at night. If they went to sleep with the sandals on, the thong worked into
the feet, and the sandals were frozen fast to them. This was partly due to
the fact that, since their old sandals had failed, they wore untanned
brogues made of newly-flayed ox-hides. It was owing to some such dire
necessity that a party of men fell out and were left behind, and seeing a
black-looking patch of ground where the snow had evidently disappeared,
they conjectured it must have been melted; and this was actually so, owing
to a spring of some sort which was to be seen steaming up in a dell close
by. To this they had turned aside and sat down, and were loth to go a step
further. But Xenophon, with his rearguard, perceived them, and begged and
implored them by all manner of means not to be left behind, telling them
that the enemy were after them in large packs pursuing; and he ended by
growing angry. They merely bade him put a knife to their throats; not one
step farther would they stir. Then it seemed best to frighten the pursuing
enemy if possible, and prevent their falling upon the invalids. It was
already dusk, and the pursuers were advancing with much noise and hubbub,
wrangling and disputing over their spoils. Then all of a sudden the
rearguard, in the plenitude of health and strength (2), sprang up out of
their lair and run upon the enemy, whilst those weary wights (3) bawled
out as loud as their sick throats could sound, and clashed their spears
against their shields; and the enemy in terror hurled themselves through
the snow into the dell, and not one of them ever uttered a sound again.</p>
<p>(2) Hug, after Rehdantz, would omit the words "in the plenitude of<br/>
health and strength."<br/>
<br/>
(3) Or, "the invalids."<br/></p>
<p>Xenophon and his party, telling the sick folk that next day people would
come for them, set off, and before they had gone half a mile they fell in
with some soldiers who had laid down to rest on the snow with their cloaks
wrapped round them, but never a guard was established, and they made them
get up. Their explanation was that those in front would not move on.
Passing by this group he sent forward the strongest of his light infantry
in advance, with orders to find out what the stoppage was. They reported
that the whole army lay reposing in such fashion. That being so,
Xenophon's men had nothing for it but to bivouac in the open air also,
without fire and supperless, merely posting what pickets they could under
the circumstances. But as soon as it drew towards day, Xenophon despatched
the youngest of his men to the sick folk behind, with orders to make them
get up and force them to proceed. Meanwhile Cheirisophus had sent some of
his men quartered in the village to enquire how they fared in the rear;
they were overjoyed to see them, and handed over the sick folk to them to
carry into camp, while they themselves continued their march forward, and
ere twenty furlongs were past reached the village in which Cheirisophus
was quartered. As soon as the two divisions were met, the resolution was
come to that it would be safe to billet the regiments throughout the
villages; Cheirisophus remained where he was, while the rest drew lots for
the villages in sight, and then, with their several detachments, marched
off to their respective destinations.</p>
<p>It was here that Polycrates, an Athenian and captain of a company, asked
for leave of absence—he wished to be off on a quest of his own; and
putting himself at the head of the active men of the division, he ran to
the village which had been allotted to Xenophon. He surprised within it
the villagers with their headman, and seventeen young horses which were
being reared as a tribute for the king, and, last of all, the headman's
own daughter, a young bride only eight days wed. Her husband had gone off
to chase hares, and so he escaped being taken with the other villagers.
The houses were underground structures with an aperture like the mouth of
a well by which to enter, but they were broad and spacious below. The
entrance for the beasts of burden was dug out, but the human occupants
descended by a ladder. In these dwellings were to be found goats and sheep
and cattle, and cocks and hens, with their various progeny. The flocks and
herds were all reared under cover upon green food. There were stores
within of wheat and barley and vegetables, and wine made from barley in
great big bowls; the grains of barley malt lay floating in the beverage up
to the lip of the vessel, and reeds lay in them, some longer, some
shorter, without joints; when you were thirsty you must take one of these
into your mouth, and suck. The beverage without admixture of water was
very strong, and of a delicious flavour to certain palates, but the taste
must be acquired.</p>
<p>Xenophon made the headman of the village his guest at supper, and bade him
keep a good heart; so far from robbing him of his children, they would
fill his house full of good things in return for what they took before
they went away; only he must set them an example, and discover some
blessing or other for the army, until they found themselves with another
tribe. To this he readily assented, and with the utmost cordiality showed
them the cellar where the wine was buried. For this night then, having
taken up their several quarters as described, they slumbered in the midst
of plenty, one and all, with the headman under watch and ward, and his
children with him safe in sight.</p>
<p>But on the following day Xenophon took the headman and set off to
Cheirisophus, making a round of the villages, and at each place turning in
to visit the different parties. Everywhere alike he found them faring
sumptuously and merry-making. There was not a single village where they
did not insist on setting a breakfast before them, and on the same table
were spread half a dozen dishes at least, lamb, kid, pork, veal, fowls,
with various sorts of bread, some of wheat and some of barley. When, as an
act of courtesy, any one wished to drink his neighbour's health, he would
drag him to the big bowl, and when there, he must duck his head and take a
long pull, drinking like an ox. The headman, they insisted everywhere,
must accept as a present whatever he liked to have. But he would accept
nothing, except where he espied any of his relations, when he made a point
of taking them off, him or her, with himself.</p>
<p>When they reached Cheirisophus they found a similar scene. There too the
men were feasting in their quarters, garlanded with whisps of hay and dry
grass, and Armenian boys were playing the part of waiters in barbaric
costumes, only they had to point out by gesture to the boys what they were
to do, like deaf and dumb. After the first formalities, when Cheirisophus
and Xenophon had greeted one another like bosom friends, they interrogated
the headman in common by means of the Persian-speaking interpreter. "What
was the country?" they asked: he replied, "Armenia." And again, "For whom
are the horses being bred?" "They are tribute for the king," he replied.
"And the neighbouring country?" "Is the land of the Chalybes," he said;
and he described the road which led to it. So for the present Xenophon
went off, taking the headman back with him to his household and friends.
He also made him a present of an oldish horse which he had got; he had
heard that the headman was a priest of the sun, and so he could fatten up
the beast and sacrifice him; otherwise he was afraid it might die
outright, for it had been injured by the long marching. For himself he
took his pick of the colts, and gave a colt apiece to each of his
fellow-generals and officers. The horses here were smaller than the
Persian horses, but much more spirited. It was here too that their friend
the headman explained to them, how they should wrap small bags or sacks
around the feet of the horses and other cattle when marching through the
snow, for without such precautions the creatures sank up to their bellies.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0033" id="link2H_4_0033"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>When a week had passed, on the eighth day Xenophon delivered over the
guide (that is to say, the village headman) to Cheirisophus. He left the
headman's household safe behind in the village, with the exception of his
son, a lad in the bloom of youth. This boy was entrusted to Episthenes of
Amphipolis to guard; if the headman proved himself a good guide, he was to
take away his son also at his departure. They finally made his house the
repository of all the good things they could contrive to get together;
then they broke up their camp and commenced to march, the headman guiding
them through the snow unfettered. When they had reached the third stage
Cheirisophus flew into a rage with him, because he had not brought them to
any villages. The headman pleaded that there were none in this part.
Cheirisophus struck him, but forgot to bind him, and the end of it was
that the headman ran away in the night and was gone, leaving his son
behind him. This was the sole ground of difference between Cheirisophus
and Xenophon during the march, this combination of ill-treatment and
neglect in the case of the guide. As to the boy, Episthenes conceived a
passion for him, and took him home with him, and found in him the most
faithful of friends.</p>
<p>After this they marched seven stages at the rate of five parasangs a day,
to the banks of the river Phasis (1), which is a hundred feet broad: and
thence they marched another couple of stages, ten parasangs; but at the
pass leading down into the plain there appeared in front of them a mixed
body of Chalybes and Taochians and Phasianians. When Cheirisophus caught
sight of the enemy on the pass at a distance of about three or four miles,
he ceased marching, not caring to approach the enemy with his troops in
column, and he passed down the order to the others: to deploy their
companies to the front, that the troops might form into line. As soon as
the rearguard had come up, he assembled the generals and officers, and
addressed them: "The enemy, as you see, are in occupation of the mountain
pass, it is time we should consider how we are to make the best fight to
win it. My opinion is, that we should give orders to the troops to take
their morning meal, whilst we deliberate whether we should cross the
mountains to-day or to-morrow." "My opinion," said Cleanor, "is, that as
soon as we have breakfasted, we should arm for the fight and attack the
enemy, without loss of time, for if we fritter away to-day, the enemy who
are now content to look at us, will grow bolder, and with their growing
courage, depend upon it, others more numerous will join them."</p>
<p>(1) Probably a tributary of the Araxes = modern Pasin-Su.<br/></p>
<p>After him Xenophon spoke: "This," he said, "is how I see the matter; if
fight we must, let us make preparation to sell our lives dearly, but if we
desire to cross with the greatest ease, the point to consider is, how we
may get the fewest wounds and throw away the smallest number of good men.
Well then, that part of the mountain which is visible stretches nearly
seven miles. Where are the men posted to intercept us? except at the road
itself, they are nowhere to be seen. It is much better to try if possible
to steal a point of this desert mountain unobserved, and before they know
where we are, secure the prize, than to fly at a strong position and an
enemy thoroughly prepared. Since it is much easier to march up a mountain
without fighting than to tramp along a level when assailants are at either
hand; and provided he has not to fight, a man will see what lies at his
feet much more plainly even at night than in broad daylight in the midst
of battle; and a rough road to feet that roam in peace may be pleasanter
than a smooth surface with the bullets whistling about your ears (2). Nor
is it so impossible, I take it, to steal a march, since it is open to us
to go by night, when we cannot be seen, and to fall back so far that they
will never notice us. In my opinion, however, if we make a feint of
attacking here, we shall find the mountain chain all the more deserted
elsewhere, since the enemy will be waiting for us here in thicker swarm.</p>
<p>(2) Or, more lit., "with the head a mark for missiles."<br/></p>
<p>"But what right have I to be drawing conclusions about stealing in your
presence, Cheirisophus? for you Lacedaemonians, as I have often been told,
you who belong to the 'peers,' practise stealing from your boyhood up; and
it is no disgrace but honourable rather to steal, except such things as
the law forbids; and in order, I presume, to stimulate your sense of
secretiveness, and to make you master thieves, it is lawful for you
further to get a whipping if you are caught. Now then you have a fine
opportunity of displaying your training. But take care we are not caught
stealing over the mountain, or we shall catch it ourselves." "For all
that," retorted Cheirisophus, "I have heard that you Athenians are clever
hands at stealing the public moneys; and that too though there is a
fearful risk for the person so employed; but, I am told, it is your best
men who are addicted to it; if it is your best men who are thought worthy
to rule. So it is a fine opportunity for yourself also, Xenophon, to
exhibit your education." "And I," replied Xenophon, "am ready to take the
rear division, as soon as we have supped, and seize the mountain chain. I
have already got guides, for the light troops laid an ambuscade, and
seized some of the cut-purse vagabonds who hung on our rear. I am further
informed by them that the mountain is not inaccessible, but is grazed by
goats and cattle, so that if we can once get hold of any portion of it,
there will be no difficulty as regards our animals—they can cross.
As to the enemy, I expect they will not even wait for us any longer, when
they once see us on a level with themselves on the heights, for they do
not even at present care to come down and meet us on fair ground."
Cheirisophus answered: "But why should you go and leave your command in
the rear? Send others rather, unless a band of volunteers will present
themselves." Thereupon Aristonymus the Methydrian came forward with some
heavy infantry, and Nicomachus the Oetean with another body of light
troops, and they made an agreement to kindle several watch-fires as soon
as they held the heights. The arrangements made, they breakfasted; and
after breakfast Cheirisophus advanced the whole army ten furlongs closer
towards the enemy, so as to strengthen the impression that he intended to
attack them at that point.</p>
<p>But as soon as they had supped and night had fallen, the party under
orders set off and occupied the mountain, while the main body rested where
they were. Now as soon as the enemy perceived that the mountain was taken,
they banished all thought of sleep, and kept many watch-fires blazing
throughout the night. But at break of day Cheirisophus offered sacrifice,
and began advancing along the road, while the detachment which held the
mountain advanced pari passu by the high ground. The larger mass of the
enemy, on his side, remained still on the mountain-pass, but a section of
them turned to confront the detachment on the heights. Before the main
bodies had time to draw together, the detachment on the height came to
close quarters, and the Hellenes were victorious and gave chase. Meanwhile
the light division of the Hellenes, issuing from the plain, were rapidly
advancing against the serried lines of the enemy, whilst Cheirisophus
followed up with his heavy infantry at quick march. But the enemy on the
road no sooner saw their higher division being worsted than they fled, and
some few of them were slain, and a vast number of wicker shields were
taken, which the Hellenes hacked to pieces with their short swords and
rendered useless. So when they had reached the summit of the pass, they
sacrificed and set up a trophy, and descending into the plain, reached
villages abounding in good things of every kind.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0034" id="link2H_4_0034"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VII </h2>
<p>After this they marched into the country of the Taochians five stages—thirty
parasangs—and provisions failed; for the Taochians lived in strong
places, into which they had carried up all their stores. Now when the army
arrived before one of these strong places—a mere fortress, without
city or houses, into which a motley crowd of men and women and numerous
flocks and herds were gathered—Cheirisophus attacked at once. When
the first regiment fell back tired, a second advanced, and again a third,
for it was impossible to surround the place in full force, as it was
encircled by a river. Presently Xenophon came up with the rearguard,
consisting of both light and heavy infantry, whereupon Cheirisophus halted
him with the words: "In the nick of time you have come; we must take this
place, for the troops have no provisions, unless we take it." Thereupon
they consulted together, and to Xenophon's inquiry, "What it was which
hindered their simply walking in?" Cheirisophus replied, "There is just
this one narrow approach which you see, but when we attempt to pass it by
they roll down volleys of stones from yonder overhanging crag," pointing
up, "and this is the state in which you find yourself, if you chance to be
caught;" and he pointed to some poor fellows with their legs or ribs
crushed to bits. "But when they have expended their ammunition," said
Xenophon, "there is nothing else, is there, to hinder our passing?
Certainly, except yonder handful of fellows, there is no one in front of
us that we can see; and of them, only two or three apparently are armed,
and the distance to be traversed under fire is, as your eyes will tell
you, about one hundred and fifty feet as near as can be, and of this space
the first hundred is thickly covered with great pines at intervals; under
cover of these, what harm can come to our men from a pelt of stones,
flying or rolling? So then, there is only fifty feet left to cross, during
a lull of stones." "Ay," said Cheirisophus, "but with our first attempt to
approach the bush a galling fire of stones commences." "The very thing we
want," said the other, "for they will use up their ammunition all the
quicker; but let us select a point from which we shall have only a brief
space to run across, if we can, and from which it will be easier to get
back, if we wish."</p>
<p>Thereupon Cheirisophus and Xenophon set out with Callimachus the
Parrhasian, the captain in command of the officers of the rearguard that
day; the rest of the captains remained out of danger. That done, the next
step was for a party of about seventy men to get away under the trees, not
in a body, but one by one, every one using his best precaution; and Agasis
the Stymphalian, and Aristonymous the Methydrian, who were also officers
of the rearguard, were posted as supports outside the trees; for it was
not possible for more than a single company to stand safely within the
trees. Here Callimachus hit upon a pretty contrivance—he ran forward
from the tree under which he was posted two or three paces, and as soon as
the stones came whizzing, he retired easily, but at each excursion more
than ten wagon-loads of rocks were expended. Agasias, seeing how
Callimachus was amusing himself, and the whole army looking on as
spectators, was seized with the fear that he might miss his chance of
being first to run the gauntlet of the enemy's fire and get into the
place. So, without a word of summons to his neighbour, Aristonymous, or to
Eurylochus of Lusia, both comrades of his, or to any one else, off he set
on his own account, and passed the whole detachment. But Callimachus,
seeing him tearing past, caught hold of his shield by the rim, and in the
meantime Aristonymous the Methydrian ran past both, and after him
Eurylochus of Lusia; for they were one and all aspirants to valour, and in
that high pursuit, each was the eager rival of the rest. So in this strife
of honour, the three of them took the fortress, and when they had once
rushed in, not a stone more was hurled from overhead.</p>
<p>And here a terrible spectacle displayed itself: the women first cast their
infants down the cliff, and then they cast themselves after their fallen
little ones, and the men likewise. In such a scene, Aeneas the
Stymphalian, an officer, caught sight of a man with a fine dress about to
throw himself over, and seized hold of him to stop him; but the other
caught him to his arms, and both were gone in an instant headlong down the
crags, and were killed. Out of this place the merest handful of human
beings were taken prisoners, but cattle and asses in abundance and flocks
of sheep.</p>
<p>From this place they marched through the Chalybes (1) seven stages, fifty
parasangs. These were the bravest men whom they encountered on the whole
march, coming cheerily to close quarters with them. They wore linen
cuirasses reaching to the groin, and instead of the ordinary "wings" or
basques, a thickly-plaited fringe of cords. They were also provided with
greaves and helmets, and at the girdle a short sabre, about as long as the
Laconian dagger, with which they cut the throats of those they mastered,
and after severing the head from the trunk they would march along carrying
it, singing and dancing, when they drew within their enemy's field of
view. They carried also a spear fifteen cubits long, lanced at one end
(2). This folk stayed in regular townships, and whenever the Hellenes
passed by they invariably hung close on their heels fighting. They had
dwelling-places in their fortresses, and into them they had carried up
their supplies, sot hat the Hellenes could get nothing from this district,
but supported themselves on the flocks and herds they had taken from the
Taochians. After this the Hellenes reached the river Harpasus, which was
four hundred feet broad. Hence they marched through the Scythenians four
stages—twenty parasangs—through a long level country to more
villages, among which they halted three days, and got in supplies.</p>
<p>(1) These are the Armeno-Chalybes, so called by Pliny in<br/>
contradistinction to another mountain tribe in Pontus so named,<br/>
who were famous for their forging, and from whom steel received<br/>
its Greek name {khalups}. With these latter we shall make<br/>
acquaintance later on.<br/>
<br/>
(2) I.e. with a single point or spike only, the Hellenic spear having<br/>
a spike at the butt end also.<br/></p>
<p>Passing on from thence in four stages of twenty parasangs, they reached a
large and prosperous well-populated city, which went by the name of
Gymnias (3), from which the governor of the country sent them a guide to
lead them through a district hostile to his own. This guide told them that
within five days he would lead them to a place from which they would see
the sea, "and," he added, "if I fail of my word, you are free to take my
life." Accordingly he put himself at their head; but he no sooner set foot
in the country hostile to himself than he fell to encouraging them to burn
and harry the land; indeed his exhortations were so earnest, it was plain
that it was for this he had come, and not out of the good-will he bore the
Hellenes.</p>
<p>(3) Gymnias is supposed (by Grote, "Hist. of Greece," vol. ix. p. 161)<br/>
to be the same as that which is now called Gumisch-Kana—perhaps<br/>
"at no great distance from Baibut," Tozer, "Turkish Armenia," p.<br/>
432. Others have identified it with Erzeroum, others with Ispir.<br/></p>
<p>On the fifth day they reached the mountain, the name of which was Theches
(4). No sooner had the men in front ascended it and caught sight of the
sea than a great cry arose, and Xenophon, in the rearguard, catching the
sound of it, conjectured that another set of enemies must surely be
attacking in front; for they were followed by the inhabitants of the
country, which was all aflame; indeed the rearguard had killed some and
captured others alive by laying an ambuscade; they had taken also about
twenty wicker shields, covered with the raw hides of shaggy oxen.</p>
<p>(4) Some MSS. give "the sacred mountain." The height in question has<br/>
been identified with "the ridge called Tekieh-Dagh to the east of<br/>
Gumisch-Kana, nearer to the sea than that place" (Grote, ib. p.<br/>
162), but the exact place from which they caught sight of the sea<br/>
has not been identified as yet, and other mountain ranges have<br/>
been suggested.<br/></p>
<p>But as the shout became louder and nearer, and those who from time to time
came up, began racing at the top of their speed towards the shouters, and
the shouting continually recommenced with yet greater volume as the
numbers increased, Xenophon settled in his mind that something
extraordinary must have happened, so he mounted his horse, and taking with
him Lycius and the cavalry, he galloped to the rescue. Presently they
could hear the soldiers shouting and passing on the joyful word, "The sea!
the sea!"</p>
<p>Thereupon they began running, rearguard and all, and the baggage animals
and horses came galloping up. But when they had reached the summit, then
indeed they fell to embracing one another—generals and officers and
all—and the tears trickled down their cheeks. And on a sudden, some
one, whoever it was, having passed down the order, the soldiers began
bringing stones and erecting a great cairn, whereon they dedicated a host
of untanned skins, and staves, and captured wicker shields, and with his
own hand the guide hacked the shields to pieces, inviting the rest to
follow his example. After this the Hellenes dismissed the guide with a
present raised from the common store, to wit, a horse, a silver bowl, a
Persian dress, and ten darics; but what he most begged to have were their
rings, and of these he got several from the soldiers. So, after pointing
out to them a village where they would find quarters, and the road by
which they would proceed towards the land of the Macrones, as evening
fell, he turned his back upon them in the night and was gone.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0035" id="link2H_4_0035"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VIII </h2>
<p>From this point the Hellenes marched through the country of the Macrones
three stages—ten parasangs, and on the first day they reached the
river, which formed the boundary between the land of the Macrones and the
land of the Scythenians. Above them, on their right, they had a country of
the sternest and ruggedest character, and on their left another river,
into which the frontier river discharges itself, and which they must
cross. This was thickly fringed with trees which, though not of any great
bulk, were closely packed. As soon as they came up to them, the Hellenes
proceeded to cut them down in their haste to get out of the place as soon
as possible. But the Macrones, armed with wicker shields and lances and
hair tunics, were already drawn up to receive them opposite the crossing.
They were cheering one another on, and kept up a steady pelt of stones
into the river, though they failed to reach the other side or do any harm.</p>
<p>At this juncture one of the light infantry came up to Xenophon; he had
been, he said, a slave at Athens, and he wished to tell him that he
recognised the speech of these people. "I think," said he, "that this must
be my native country, and if there is no objection I will have a talk with
them." "No objection at all," replied Xenophon, "pray talk to them, and
ask them first, who they are." In answer to this question they said, "they
were Macrones." "Well, then," said he, "ask them why they are drawn up in
battle and want to fight with us." They answered, "Because you are
invading our country." The generals bade him say: "If so, it is with not
intention certainly of doing it or you any harm: but we have been at war
with the king, and are now returning to Hellas, and all we want is to
reach the sea." The others asked, "Were they willing to give them pledges
to that effect?" They replied: "Yes, they were ready to give and receive
pledges to that effect." Then the Macrones gave a barbaric lance to the
Hellenes, and the Hellenes a Hellenic lance to them: "for these," they
said, "would serve as pledges," and both sides called upon the gods to
witness.</p>
<p>After the pledges were exchanged, the Macrones fell to vigorously hewing
down trees and constructing a road to help them across, mingling freely
with the Hellenes and fraternising in their midst, and they afforded them
as good as market as they could, and for three days conducted them on
their march, until they had brought them safely to the confines of the
Colchians. At this point they were confronted by a great mountain chain,
which however was accessible, and on it the Colchians were drawn up for
battle. In the first instance, the Hellenes drew up opposite in line of
battle, as though they were minded to assault the hill in that order; but
afterwards the generals determined to hold a council of war, and consider
how to make the fairest fight.</p>
<p>Accordingly Xenophon said: "I am not for advancing in line, but advise to
form companies by columns. To begin with, the line," he urged, "would be
scattered and thrown into disorder at once; for we shall find the mountain
full of inequalities, it will be pathless here and easy to traverse there.
The mere fact of first having formed in line, and then seeing the line
thrown into disorder, must exercise a disheartening effect. Again, if we
advance several deep, the enemy will none the less overlap us, and turn
their superfluous numbers to account as best they like; while, if we march
in shallow order, we may fully expect our line to be cut through and
through by the thick rain of missiles and rush of men, and if this happen
anywhere along the line, the whole line will equally suffer. No; my notion
is to form columns by companies, covering ground sufficient with spaces
between the companies to allow the last companies of each flank to be
outside the enemy's flanks. Thus we shall with our extreme companies be
outside the enemy's line, and the best men at the head of their columns
will lead the attack, and every company will pick its way where the ground
is easy; also it will be difficult for the enemy to force his way into the
intervening spaces, when there are companies on both sides; nor will it be
easy for him to cut in twain any individual company marching in column.
If, too, any particular company should be pressed, the neighbouring
company will come to the rescue, or if at any point any single company
succeed in reaching the height, from that moment not one man of the enemy
will stand his ground."</p>
<p>This proposal was carried, and they formed into columns by companies (1).
Then Xenophon, returning from the right wing to the left, addressed the
soldiers. "Men," he said, "these men whom you see in front of you are the
sole obstacles still interposed between us and the haven of our hopes so
long deferred. We will swallow them up whole, without cooking (2), if we
can."</p>
<p>(1) For this formation, see "The Retreat of the Ten Thousand; a<br/>
military study for all time," by Lieut.-General J. L. Vaughan,<br/>
C.B.<br/>
<br/>
(2) Or, "we will gobble them up raw." He is thinking of the Homeric<br/>
line ("Iliad", iv. 35) "Perchance wert thou to enter within the<br/>
gates and long walls and devour Priam raw, and Priam's sons and<br/>
all the Trojans, then mightest thou assuage thine anger."—Leaf.<br/></p>
<p>The several divisions fell into position, the companies were formed into
columns, and the result was a total of something like eighty companies of
heavy infantry, each company consisting on an average of a hundred men.
The light infantry and bowmen were arranged in three divisions—two
outside to support the left and the right respectively, and the third in
the centre—each division consisting of about six hundred men (3).</p>
<p>(3) This suggests 1800 as the total of the peltasts, 8000 as the total<br/>
of the hoplites, but the companies were probably not limited to<br/>
100, and under "peltasts" were probably included other light<br/>
troops.<br/></p>
<p>Before starting, the generals passed the order to offer prayer; and with
the prayer and battle hymn rising from their lips they commenced their
advance. Cheirisophus and Xenophon, and the light infantry with them,
advanced outside the enemy's line to right and left, and the enemy, seeing
their advance, made an effort to keep parallel and confront them, but in
order to do so, as he extended partly to right and partly to left, he was
pulled to pieces, and there was a large space or hollow left in the centre
of his line. Seeing them separate thus, the light infantry attached to the
Arcadian battalion, under command of Aeschines, an Arcarnanian, mistook
the movement for flight, and with a loud shout rushed on, and these were
the first to scale the mountain summit; but they were closely followed up
by the Arcadian heavy infantry, under command of Cleanor of Orchomenus.</p>
<p>When they began running in that way, the enemy stood their ground no
longer, but betook themselves to flight, one in one direction, one in
another, and the Hellenes scaled the hill and found quarters in numerous
villages which contained supplies in abundance. Here, generally speaking,
there was nothing to excite their wonderment, but the numbers of bee-hives
were indeed astonishing, and so were certain properties of the honey (4).
The effect upon the soldiers who tasted the combs was, that they all went
for the nonce quite off their heads, and suffered from vomiting and
diarrhoea, with a total inability to stand steady on their legs. A small
dose produced a condition not unlike violent drunkenness, a large one an
attack very like a fit of madness, and some dropped down, apparently at
death's door. So they lay, hundreds of them, as if there had been a great
defeat, a prey to the cruellest despondency. But the next day, none had
died; and almost at the same hour of the day at which they had eaten they
recovered their senses, and on the third or fourth day got on their legs
again like convalescents after a severe course of medical treatment.</p>
<p>(4) "Modern travellers attest the existence, in these regions, of<br/>
honey intoxicating and poisonous.... They point out the Azalea<br/>
Pontica as the flower from which the bees imbibe this peculiar<br/>
quality."—Grote, "Hist. of Greece," vol. ix. p. 155.<br/></p>
<p>From this place they marched on two stages—seven parasangs—and
reached the sea at Trapezus (5), a populous Hellenic city on the Euxine
Sea, a colony of the Sinopeans, in the territory of the Colchians. Here
they halted about thirty days in the villages of the Colchians, which they
used as a base of operations to ravage the whole territory of Colchis. The
men of Trapezus supplied the army with a market, entertained them, and
gave them, as gifts of hospitality, oxen and wheat and wine. Further, they
negotiated with them in behalf of their neighbours the Colchians, who
dwelt in the plain for the most part, and from this folk also came gifts
of hospitality in the shape of cattle. And now the Hellenes made
preparation for the sacrifice which they had vowed, and a sufficient
number of cattle came in for them to offer thank-offerings for safe
guidance to Zeus the Saviour, and to Heracles (6), and to the other gods,
according to their vows. They instituted also a gymnastic contest on the
mountain side, just where they were quartered, and chose Dracontius, a
Spartan (who had been banished from home when a lad, having
unintentionally slain another boy with a blow of his dagger), to
superintend the course, and be president of the games.</p>
<p>(5) Trebizond.<br/>
<br/>
(6) Or, "to sacrifice to Zeus the Preserver, and to Heracles<br/>
thank-offerings for safe guidance," Heracles "the conductor"<br/>
having special sympathy with wanderers.<br/></p>
<p>As soon as the sacrifices were over, they handed over the hides of the
beasts to Dracontius, and bade him lead the way to his racecourse. He
merely waved his hand and pointed to where they were standing, and said,
"There, this ridge is just the place for running, anywhere, everywhere."
"But how," it was asked, "will they manage to wrestle on the hard scrubby
ground?" "Oh! worse knocks for those who are thrown," the president
replied. There was a mile race for boys, the majority being captive lads;
and for the long race more than sixty Cretans competed; there was
wrestling, boxing, and the pankration (7). Altogether it was a beautiful
spectacle. There was a large number of entries, and the emulation, with
their companions, male and female, standing as spectators, was immense.
There was horse-racing also; the riders had to gallop down a steep incline
to the sea, and then turn and come up again to the altar, and on the
descent more than half rolled head over heels, and then back they came
toiling up the tremendous steep, scarcely out of a walking pace. Loud were
the shouts, the laughter, and the cheers.</p>
<p>(7) The pankration combined both wrestling and boxing.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0036" id="link2H_4_0036"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK V </h2>
<p>(In the preceding portion of the narrative a detailed account<br/>
is given of all that the Hellenes did, and how they fared on<br/>
the march up with Cyrus; and also of all that befell them on<br/>
their march subsequently, until they reached the seaboard of<br/>
the Euxine Sea, or Pontus, and the Hellenic city of Trapezus,<br/>
where they duly offered the sacrifice for safe deliverance<br/>
which they had vowed to offer as soon as they set foot on a<br/>
friendly soil.)<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0037" id="link2H_4_0037"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>After this they met and took counsel concerning the remainder of the
march. The first speaker was Antileon of Thurii. He rose and said: "For my
part, sirs, I am weary by this time of getting kit together and packing up
for a start, of walking and running and carrying heavy arms, and of
tramping along in line, or mounting guard, and doing battle. The sole
desire I now have is to cease from all these pains, and for the future,
since here we have the sea before us, to sail on and on, 'stretched out in
sleep,' like Odysseus, and so to find myself in Hellas." When they heard
these remarks, the soldiers showed their approval with loud cries of "well
said," and then another spoke to the same effect, and then another, and
indeed all present. Then Cheirisophus got up and said: "I have a friend,
sirs, who, as good hap will have it, is now high admiral, Anaxibius. If
you like to send me to him, I think I can safely promise to return with
some men-of-war and other vessels which will carry us. All you have to do,
if you are really minded to go home by sea, is to wait here till I come. I
will be back ere long." The soldiers were delighted at these words, and
voted that Cheirisophus should set sail on his mission without delay.</p>
<p>After him, Xenophon got up, and spoke as follows: "Cheirisophus, it is
agreed, sets out in search of vessels, and we are going to await him. Let
me tell you what, in my opinion, it is reasonable to do while we are
waiting. First of all, we must provide ourselves with necessaries from
hostile territory, for there is not a sufficient market, nor, if there
were, have we, with a few solitary exceptions, the means of purchase. Now,
the district is hostile, so that if you set off in search of provisions
without care and precaution, the chances are that many of us will be lost.
To meet this risk, I propose that we should organise foraging parties to
capture provisions, and, for the rest, not roam about the country at
random. The organisation of the matter should be left to us." (The
resolution was passed.) "Please listen to another proposal;" he continued:
"Some of you, no doubt, will be going out to pillage. It will be best, I
think, that whoever does so should in each case before starting inform us
of his intent, and in what direction he means to go, so that we may know
the exact number of those who are out and of those who stop behind. Thus
we shall be able to help in preparing and starting the expedition where
necessary; and in case of aid or reinforcements being called for, we shall
know in what direction to proceed; or, again, if the attempt is to be
undertaken by raw or less expert hands, we may throw in the weight of our
experience and advice by endeavouring to discover the strength of those
whom they design to attack." This proposal was also carried. "Here is
another point," he continued, "to which I would draw your attention. Our
enemies will not lack leisure to make raids upon us: nor is it unnatural,
that they should lay plots for us; for we have appropriated what is
theirs; they are seated over us ever on the watch. I propose then that we
should have regular outposts round the camp. If we take it in succession
to do picket and outlook duty, the enemy will be less able to harry us.
And here is another point for your observation; supposing we knew for
certain that Cheirisophus must return with a sufficient number of vessels,
there would be no need of the remark, but as that is still problematical,
I propose that we should try to get together vessels on the spot also. If
he comes and finds us already provided for here, we shall have more ships
than we need, that is all; while, if he fails to bring them, we shall have
the local supply to fall back upon. I see ships sailing past perpetually,
so we have only to ask the loan of some war-ships from the men of
Trapezus, and we can bring them into port, and safeguard them with their
rudders unshipped, until we have enough to carry us. By this course I
think we shall not fail of finding the means of transport requisite." That
resolution was also passed. He proceeded: "Consider whether you think it
equitable to support by means of a general fund the ships' companies which
we so impress, while they wait here for our benefit, and to agree upon a
fare, on the principle of repaying kindnesses in kind." That too was
passed. "Well then," said he, "in case, after all, our endeavours should
not be crowned with success, and we find that we have not vessels enough,
I propose that we should enjoin on the cities along the seaboard the duty
of constructing and putting in order the roads, which we hear are
impassable. They will be only too glad to obey, no doubt, out of mere
terror and their desire to be rid of us."</p>
<p>This last proposal was met by loud cries and protestations against the
idea of going by land at all. So, perceiving their infatuation, he did not
put the question to the vote, but eventually persuaded the cities
voluntarily to construct roads by the suggestion, "If you get your roads
in good order, we shall all the sooner be gone." They further got a
fifty-oared galley from the Trapezuntines, and gave the command of it to
Dexippus, a Laconian, one of the perioeci (1). This man altogether
neglected to collect vessels on the offing, but slunk off himself, and
vanished, ship and all, out of Pontus. Later on, however, he paid the
penalty of his misdeeds. He became involved in some meddling and making in
Thrace at the court of Seuthes, and was put to death by the Laconian
Nicander. They also got a thirty-oared galley, the command of which was
entrusted to Polycrates, an Athenian, and that officer brought into
harbour to the camp all the vessels he could lay his hands on. If these
were laden, they took out the freights and appointed guards to keep an eye
on their preservation, whilst they used the ships themselves for transport
service on the coast. While matters stood at this point, the Hellenes used
to make forays with varying success; sometimes they captured prey and
sometimes they failed. On one occasion Cleanetus led his own and another
company against a strong position, and was killed himself, with many
others of his party.</p>
<p>(1) A native of the country parts of Laconia.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0038" id="link2H_4_0038"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>The time came when it was no longer possible to capture provisions, going
and returning to the camp in one day. In consequence of this, Xenophon
took some guides from the Trapezuntines and led half the army out against
the Drilae, leaving the other half to guard the camp. That was necessary,
since the Colchians, who had been ousted from their houses, were assembled
thickly, and sat eyeing them from the heights above; on the other hand the
Trapezuntines, being friendly to the native inhabitants, were not for
leading the Hellenes to places where it was easy to capture provisions.
But against the Drilae, from whom they personally suffered, they would
lead them with enthusiasm, up into mountainous and scarcely accessible
fortresses, and against the most warlike people of any in the Pontus.</p>
<p>But when the Hellenes had reached the uplands, the Drilae set fire to all
their fastnesses which they thought could be taken easily, and beat a
retreat; and except here and there a stray pig or bullock or other animal
which had escaped the fire there was nothing to capture; but there was one
fastness which served as their metropolis: into this the different streams
of people collected; round it ran a tremendously deep ravine, and the
approaches to the place were difficult. So the light infantry ran forward
five or six furlongs in advance of the heavy infantry, and crossed the
ravine; and seeing quantities of sheep and other things, proceeded to
attack the place. Close at their heels followed a number of those who had
set out on the foray armed with spears, so that the storming party across
the ravine amounted to more than two thousand. But, finding that they
could not take the place by a coup-de-main, as there was a trench running
round it, mounded up some breadth, with a stockade on the top of the
earthwork and a close-packed row of wooden bastions, they made an attempt
to run back, but the enemy fell upon them from the rear. To get away by a
sudden rush was out of the question, since the descent from the fortress
into the ravine only admitted of moving in single file. Under the
circumstances they sent to Xenophon, who was in command of the heavy
infantry. The messenger came and delivered his message: "There is a
fastness choke full of all sorts of stores, but we cannot take it, it is
too strong; nor can we easily get away; the enemy rush out and deliver
battle, and the return is difficult."</p>
<p>On hearing this, Xenophon pushed forward his heavy infantry to the edge of
the ravine, and there ordered them to take up a position, while he himself
with the officers crossed over to determine whether it were better to
withdraw the party already across, or to bring over the heavy infantry
also, on the supposition that the fortress might be taken. In favour of
the latter opinion it was agreed that the retreat must cost many lives,
and the officers were further disposed to think, they could take the
place. Xenophon consented, relying on the victims, for the seers had
announced, that there would be a battle, but that the result of the
expedition would be good. So he sent the officers to bring the heavy
troops across, while he himself remained, having drawn off all the light
infantry and forbidden all sharp-shooting at long range. As soon as the
heavy infantry had arrived, he ordered each captain to form his company,
in whatever way he hoped to make it most effective in the coming struggle.
Side by side together they stood, these captains, not for the first time
to-day competitors for the award of manly virtue. While they were thus
employed, he—the general—was engaged in passing down his order
along the ranks of the light infantry and archers respectively to march
with the javelin on its thong and the arrow to the string, ready at the
word "shoot" to discharge their missiles, while the light troops were to
have their wallets well stocked with slingstones; lastly, he despatched
his adjutants to see to the proper carrying out of these orders.</p>
<p>And now the preparations were complete: the officers and lieutenants and
all others claiming to be peers of these, were drawn up in their several
places. With a glance each was able to command the rest in the
crescent-like disposition which the ground invited. Presently the notes of
the battle hymn arose, the clarion spoke, and with a thrilling cry in
honour of the warrior-god, commenced a rush of the heavy infantry at full
speed under cover of a storm of missiles, lances, arrows, bullets, but
most of all stones hurled from the hand with ceaseless pelt, while there
were some who brought firebrands to bear. Overwhelmed by this crowd of
missiles, the enemy left their stockades and their bastion towers, which
gave Agasias the Stymphalian and Philoxenus of Pellene a chance not to be
missed; laying aside their heavy arms, up they went in bare tunics only,
and one hauled another up, and meantime another had mounted, and the place
was taken, as they thought. Then the peltasts and light troops rushed in
and began snatching what each man could. Xenophon the while, posted at the
gates, kept back as many of the hoplites as he could, for there were other
enemies now visible on certain strong citadel heights; and after a lapse
of no long time a shout arose within, and the men came running back, some
still clutching what they had seized; and presently here and there a
wounded man; and mighty was the jostling about the portals. To the
questions which were put to them the outpouring fugitives repeated the
same story: there was a citadel within and enemies in crowds were making
savage sallies and beating the fellows inside.</p>
<p>At that Xenophon ordered Tolmides the herald to proclaim: "Enter all who
are minded to capture aught." In poured the surging multitude, and the
counter-current of persons elbowing their passage in prevailed over the
stream of those who issued forth, until they beat back and cooped up the
enemy within the citadel again. So outside the citadel everything was
sacked and pillaged by the Hellenes, and the heavy infantry took up their
position, some about the stockades, others along the road leading up to
the citadel. Xenophon and the officers meantime considered the possibility
of taking the citadel, for if so, their safety was assured; but if
otherwise, it would be very difficult to get away. As the result of their
deliberations they agreed that the place was impregnable. Then they began
making preparations for the retreat. Each set of men proceeded to pull
down the palisading which faced themselves; further, they sent away all
who were useless or who had enough to do to carry their burdens, with the
mass of the heavy infantry accompanying them; the officers in each case
leaving behind men whom they could severally depend on.</p>
<p>But as soon as they began to retreat, out rushed upon them from within a
host of fellows, armed with wicker shields and lances, greaves and
Paphlagonian helmets. Others might be seen scaling the houses on this side
and that of the road leading into the citadel. Even pursuit in the
direction of the citadel was dangerous, since the enemy kept hurling down
on them great beams from above, so that to stop and to make off were alike
dangerous, and night approaching was full of terrors. But in the midst of
their fighting and their despair some god gave them a means of safety. All
of a sudden, by whatsoever hand ignited, a flame shot up; it came from a
house on the right hand, and as this gradually fell in, the people from
the other houses on the right took to their heels and fled.</p>
<p>Xenophon, laying this lesson of fortune to heart, gave orders to set fire
to the left-hand houses also, which being of wood burned quickly, with the
result that the occupants of these also took to flight. The men
immediately at their front were the sole annoyance now, and these were
safe to fall upon them as they made their exit and in their descent. Here
then the word was passed for all who were out of range to bring up logs of
wood and pile them between themselves and the enemy, and when there was
enough of these they set them on fire; they also fired the houses along
the trench-work itself, so as to occupy the attention of the enemy. Thus
they got off, though with difficulty, and escaped from the place by
putting a fire between them and the enemy; and the whole city was burnt
down, houses, turrets, stockading, and everything belonging to it except
the citadel.</p>
<p>Next day the Hellenes were bent on getting back with the provisions; but
as they dreaded the descent to Trapezus, which was precipitous and narrow,
they laid a false ambuscade, and a Mysian, called after the name of his
nation (Mysus) (1), took ten of the Cretans and halted in some thick
brushy ground, where he made a feint of endeavouring to escape the notice
of the enemy. The glint of their light shields, which were of brass, now
and again gleamed through the brushwood. The enemy, seeing it all through
the thicket, were confirmed in their fears of an ambuscade. But the army
meanwhile was quietly making its descent; and when it appeared that they
had crept down far enough, the signal was given to the Mysian to flee as
fast as he could, and he, springing up, fled with his men. The rest of the
party, that is the Cretans, saying, "We are caught if we race," left the
road and plunged into a wood, and tumbling and rolling down the gullies
were saved. The Mysian, fleeing along the road, kept crying for
assistance, which they sent him, and picked him up wounded. The party of
rescue now beat a retreat themselves with their face to the foe, exposed
to a shower of missiles, to which some of the Cretan bowmen responded with
their arrows. In this way they all reached the camp in safety.</p>
<p>(1) Lit. "{Musos} (Mysus), a Mysian by birth, and {Musos} (Mysus) by<br/>
name."<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0039" id="link2H_4_0039"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>Now when Cheirisophus did not arrive, and the supply of ships was
insufficient, and to get provisions longer was impossible, they resolved
to depart. On board the vessels they embarked the sick, and those above
forty years of age, with the boys and women, and all the baggage which the
solders were not absolutely forced to take for their own use. The two
eldest generals, Philesius and Sophaenetus, were put in charge, and so the
party embarked, while the rest resumed their march, for the road was now
completely constructed. Continuing their march that day and the next, on
the third they reached Cerasus, a Hellenic city on the sea, and a colony
of Sinope, in the country of the Colchians. Here they halted ten days, and
there was a review and numbering of the troops under arms, when there were
found to be eight thousand six hundred men. So many had escaped; the rest
had perished at the hands of the enemy, or by reason of the snow, or else
disease.</p>
<p>At this time and place they divided the money accruing from the captives
sold, and a tithe selected for Apollo and Artemis of the Ephesians was
divided between the generals, each of whom took a portion to guard for the
gods, Neon the Asinaean (1) taking on behalf of Cheirisophus.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. of Asine, perhaps the place named in Thuc. iv. 13, 54; vi.<br/>
situated on the western side of the Messenian bay. Strabo,<br/>
however, speaks of another Asine near Gytheum, but possibly means<br/>
Las. See Arnold's note to Thuc. iv. 13, and Smith's "Dict. Geog.<br/>
(s.v.)"<br/></p>
<p>Out of the portion which fell to Xenophon he caused a dedicatory offering
to Apollo to be made and dedicated among the treasures of the Athenians at
Delphi (2). It was inscribed with his own name and that of Proxenus, his
friend, who was killed with Clearchus. The gift for Artemis of the
Ephesians was, in the first instance, left behind by him in Asia at the
time when he left that part of the world himself with Agesilaus on the
march into Boeotia (3). He left it behind in charge of Megabyzus, the
sacristan of the goddess, thinking that the voyage on which he was
starting was fraught with danger. In the event of his coming out of it
alive, he charged Megabyzus to restore to him the deposit; but should any
evil happen to him, then he was to cause to be made and to dedicate on his
behalf to Artemis, whatsoever thing he thought would be pleasing to the
goddess.</p>
<p>(2) Cf. Herod. i. 14; Strabo. ix. 420 for such private treasuries at<br/>
Delphi.<br/>
<br/>
(3) I.e. in the year B.C. 394. The circumstances under which Agesilaus<br/>
was recalled from Asia, with the details of his march and the<br/>
battle of Coronea, are described by Xenophon in the fourth book of<br/>
the "Hellenica."<br/></p>
<p>In the days of his banishment, when Xenophon was now established by the
Lacedaemonians as a colonist in Scillus (4), a place which lies on the
main road to Olympia, Megabyzus arrived on his way to Olympia as a
spectator to attend the games, and restored to him the deposit. Xenophon
took the money and bought for the goddess a plot of ground at a point
indicated to him by the oracle. The plot, it so happened, had its own
Selinus river flowing through it, just as at Ephesus the river Selinus
flows past the temple of Artemis, and in both streams fish and mussels are
to be found. On the estate at Scillus there is hunting and shooting of all
the beasts of the chase that are.</p>
<p>(4) Scillus, a town of Triphylia, a district of Elis. In B.C. 572 the<br/>
Eleians had razed Pisa and Scillus to the ground. But between B.C.<br/>
392 and 387 the Lacedaemonians, having previously (B.C. 400,<br/>
"Hell." III. ii. 30) compelled the Eleians to renounce their<br/>
supremacy over their dependent cities, colonised Scillus and<br/>
eventually gave it to Xenophon, then an exile from Athens.<br/>
Xenophon resided here from fifteen to twenty years, but was, it is<br/>
said, expelled from it by the Eleians soon after the battle of<br/>
Leuctra, in B.C. 371.—"Dict. Geog. (s.v.)" The site of the place,<br/>
and of Xenophon's temple, is supposed to be in the neighbourhood<br/>
of the modern village of Chrestena, or possibly nearer Mazi. To<br/>
reach Olympia, about 2 1/2 miles distant, one must cross the<br/>
Alpheus.<br/></p>
<p>Here with the sacred money he built an altar and a temple, and ever after,
year by year, tithed the fruits of the land in their season and did
sacrifice to the goddess, while all the citizens and neighbours, men and
women, shared in the festival. The goddess herself provided for the
banqueters meat and loaves and wine and sweetmeats, with portions of the
victims sacrificed from the sacred pasture, as also of those which were
slain in the chase; for Xenophon's own lads, with the lads of the other
citizens, always made a hunting excursion against the festival day, in
which any grown men who liked might join. The game was captured partly
from the sacred district itself, partly from Pholoe (5), pigs and gazelles
and stags. The place lies on the direct road from Lacedaemon to Olympia,
about twenty furlongs from the temple of Zeus in Olympia, and within the
sacred enclosure there is meadow-land and wood-covered hills, suited to
the breeding of pigs and goats and cattle and horses, so that even the
sumpter animals of the pilgrims passing to the feast fare sumptuously. The
shrine is girdled by a grove of cultivated trees, yielding dessert fruits
in their season. The temple itself is a facsimile on a small scale of the
great temple at Ephesus, and the image of the goddess is like the golden
statue at Ephesus, save only that it is made, not of gold, but of cypress
wood. Beside the temple stands a column bearing this inscription:—THE
PLACE IS SACRED TO ARTEMIS. HE WHO HOLDS IT AND ENJOYS THE FRUITS OF IT IS
BOUND TO SACRIFICE YEARLY A TITHE OF THE PRODUCE. AND FROM THE RESIDUE
THEREOF TO KEEP IN REPAIR THE SHRINE. IF ANY MAN FAIL IN AUGHT OF THIS THE
GODDESS HERSELF WILL LOOK TO IT THAT THE MATTER SHALL NOT SLEEP.</p>
<p>(5) Pholoe. This mountain (north of the Alpheus) is an offshoot of<br/>
Erymanthus, crossing the Pisatis from east to west, and separating<br/>
the waters of the Peneus and the Ladon from those of the Alpheus<br/>
—"Dict. Geog." (Elis).<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0040" id="link2H_4_0040"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>From Cerasus they continued the march, the same portion of the troops
being conveyed by sea as before, and the rest marching by land. When they
had reached the frontiers of the Mossynoecians (1) they sent to him
Timesitheus the Trapezuntine, who was the proxenos (2) of the
Mossynoecians, to inquire whether they were to pass through their
territory as friends or foes. They, trusting in their strongholds, replied
that they would not give them passage. It was then that Timesitheus
informed them that the Mossynoecians on the farther side of the country
were hostile to these members of the tribe; and it was resolved to invite
the former to make an alliance, if they wished it. So Timesitheus was
sent, and came back with their chiefs. On their arrival there was a
conference of the Mossynoecian chiefs and the generals of the Hellenes,
and Xenophon made a speech which Timesitheus interpreted. He said: "Men of
the Mossynoecians, our desire is to reach Hellas in safety; and since we
have no vessels we must needs go by foot, but these people who, as we
hear, are your enemies, prevent us. Will you take us for your allies? Now
is your chance to exact vengeance for any wrong, which they at any time
may have put upon you, and for the future they will be your subjects; but
if you send us about our business, consider and ask yourselves from what
quarter will you ever again obtain so strong a force to help you?" To this
the chief of the Mossynoecians made answer:—that the proposal was in
accordance with their wishes and they welcomed the alliance. "Good," said
Xenophon, "but to what use do you propose to put us, if we become your
allies? And what will you in turn be able to do to assist our passage?"
They replied: "We can make an incursion into this country hostile to
yourselves and us, from the opposite side, and also send you ships and men
to this place, who will aid you in fighting and conduct you on the road."</p>
<p>(1) I.e. dwellers in mossyns, or wooden towers. See Herod. iii. 94;<br/>
vii. 78. Cf. also Strabo, xi. 41.<br/>
<br/>
(2) Or, "consul."<br/></p>
<p>On this understanding, they exchanged pledges and were gone. The next day
they returned, bringing three hundred canoes, each hollowed out of a
single trunk. There were three men in each, two of whom disembarked and
fell into rank, whilst the third remained. Then the one set took the boats
and sailed back again, whilst the other two-thirds who remained marshalled
themselves in the following way. They stood in rows of about a hundred
each, like the rows of dancers in a chorus, standing vis-a-vis to one
another, and all bearing wicker shields, made of white oxhide, shaggy, and
shaped like an ivy leaf; in the right hand they brandished a javelin about
six cubits long, with a lance in front, and rounded like a ball at the
butt end of the shaft.</p>
<p>Their bodies were clad in short frocks, scarcely reaching to the knees and
in texture closely resembling that of a linen bedclothes' bag; on their
heads they wore leathern helmets just like the Paphlagonian helmet, with a
tuft of hair in the middle, as like a tiara in shape as possible. They
carried moreover iron battle-axes. Then one of them gave, as it were, the
key-note and started, while the rest, taking up the strain and the step,
followed singing and marking time. Passing through the various corps and
heavy armed battalions of the Hellenes, they marched straight against the
enemy, to what appeared the most assailable of his fortresses. It was
situated in front of the city, or mother city, as it is called, which
latter contains the high citadel of the Mossynoecians. This citadel was
the real bone of contention, the occupants at any time being acknowledged
as the masters of all the other Mossynoecians. The present holders (so it
was explained) had no right to its possession; for the sake of
self-aggrandisement they had seized what was really common property.</p>
<p>Some of the Hellenes followed the attacking party, not under the orders of
the generals, but for the sake of plunder. As they advanced, the enemy for
a while kept quiet; but as they got near the place, they made a sortie and
routed them, killing several of the barbarians as well as some of the
Hellenes who had gone up with them; and so pursued them until they saw the
Hellenes advancing to the rescue. Then they turned round and made off,
first cutting off the heads of the dead men and flaunting them in the face
of the Hellenes and of their own private foes, dancing the while and
singing in a measured strain. But the Hellenes were much vexed to think
that their foes had only been rendered bolder, while the Hellenes who had
formed part of the expedition had turned tail and fled, in spite of their
numbers; a thing which had not happened previously during the whole
expedition. So Xenophon called a meeting of the Hellenes and spoke as
follows: "Soldiers, do not in any wise be cast down by what has happened,
be sure that good no less than evil will be the result; for to begin with,
you now know certainly that those who are going to guide us are in very
deed hostile to those with whom necessity drives us to quarrel; and, in
the next place, some of our own body, these Hellenes who have made so
light of orderly array and conjoint action with ourselves, as though they
must needs achieve in the company of barbarians all they could with
ourselves, have paid the penalty and been taught a lesson, so that another
time they will be less prone to leave our ranks. But you must be prepared
to show these friendly barbarians that you are of a better sort, and prove
to the enemy that battle with the undisciplined is one thing, but with men
like yourselves another."</p>
<p>Accordingly they halted, as they were, that day. Next day they sacrificed
and finding the victims favourable, they breakfasted, formed the companies
into columns, and with their barbarians arranged in similar order on their
left, began their march. Between the companies were the archers only
slightly retired behind the front of the heavy infantry, on account of the
enemy's active light troops, who ran down and kept up volleys of stones.
These were held in check by the archers and peltasts; and steadily step by
step the mass marched on, first to the position from which the barbarians
and those with them had been driven two days back, and where the enemy
were now drawn up to meet them. Thus it came to pass that the barbarians
first grappled with the peltasts and maintained the battle until the heavy
infantry were close, when they turned and fled. The peltasts followed
without delay, and pursued them right up to their city, while the heavy
troops in unbroken order followed. As soon as they were up at the houses
of the capital, there and then the enemy, collecting all together in one
strong body, fought valiantly, and hurled their javelins, or else clenched
their long stout spears, almost too heavy for a man to wield, and did
their best to ward off the attack at close quarters.</p>
<p>But when the Hellenes, instead of giving way, kept massing together more
thickly, the barbarians fled from this place also, and in a body deserted
the fortress. Their king, who sat in his wooden tower or mossyn, built on
the citadel (there he sits and there they maintain him, all at the common
cost, and guard him narrowly), refused to come forth, as did also those in
the fortress first taken, and so were burnt to a cinder where they were,
their mossyns, themselves, and all. The Hellenes, pillaging and ransacking
these places, discovered in the different houses treasures and magazines
of loaves, pile upon pile, "the ancestral stores," as the Mossynoecians
told them; but the new corn was laid up apart with the straw-stalk and ear
together, and this was for the most part spelt. Slices of dolphin were
another discovery, in narrow-necked jars, all properly salted and pickled;
and there was blubber of dolphin in vessels, which the Mossynoecians used
precisely as the Hellenes use oil. Then there were large stores of nuts on
the upper floor, the broad kind without a division (3). This was also a
chief article of food with them—boiled nuts and baked loaves. Wine
was also discovered. This, from its rough, dry quality, tasted sharp when
drunk pure, but mixed with water was sweet and fragrant.</p>
<p>(3) I.e. "chestnuts."<br/></p>
<p>The Hellenes breakfasted and then started forward on their march, having
first delivered the stronghold to their allies among the Mossynoecians. As
for the other strongholds belonging to tribes allied with their foes,
which they passed en route, the most accessible were either deserted by
their inhabitants or gave in their adhesion voluntarily. The following
description will apply to the majority of them: the cities were on an
average ten miles apart, some more, some less; but so elevated is the
country and intersected by such deep clefts that if they chose to shout
across to one another, their cries would be heard from one city to
another. When, in the course of their march, they came upon a friendly
population, these would entertain them with exhibitions of fatted children
belonging to the wealthy classes, fed up on boiled chestnuts until they
were as white as white can be, of skin plump and delicate, and very nearly
as broad as they were long, with their backs variegated and their breasts
tattooed with patterns of all sorts of flowers. They sought after the
women in the Hellenic army, and would fain have laid with them openly in
broad daylight, for that was their custom. The whole community, male and
female alike, were fair-complexioned and white-skinned.</p>
<p>It was agreed that this was the most barbaric and outlandish people that
they had passed through on the whole expedition, and the furthest removed
from the Hellenic customs, doing in a crowd precisely what other people
would prefer to do in solitude, and when alone behaving exactly as others
would behave in company, talking to themselves and laughing at their own
expense, standing still and then again capering about, wherever they might
chance to be, without rhyme or reason, as if their sole business were to
show off to the rest of the world.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0041" id="link2H_4_0041"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>Through this country, friendly or hostile as the chance might be, the
Hellenes marched, eight stages in all, and reached the Chalybes. These
were a people few in number, and subject to the Mossynoecians. Their
livelihood was for the most part derived from mining and forging iron.</p>
<p>Thence they came to the Tibarenians. The country of the Tibarenians was
far more level, and their fortresses lay on the seaboard and were less
strong, whether by art or nature. The generals wanted to attack these
places, so that the army might get some pickings, and they would not
accept the gifts of hospitality which came in from the Tibarenians, but
bidding them wait till they had taken counsel, they proceeded to offer
sacrifice. After several abortive attempts, the seers at last pronounced
an opinion that the gods in no wise countenanced war. Then they accepted
the gifts of hospitality, and marching through what was now recognised as
a friendly country, in two days reached Cotyora, a Hellenic city, and a
colony of Sinope, albeit situated in the territory of the Tibarenians (1).</p>
<p>(1) The MSS. here read, "Up to this point the expedition was conducted<br/>
on land, and the distance traversed on foot from the battle-field<br/>
near Babylon down to Cotyora amounted to one hundred and<br/>
twenty-two stages—that is to say, six hundred and twenty<br/>
parasangs, or eighteen thousand stades, or if measured in time, an<br/>
eight months' march." The words are probably the note of some<br/>
editor or commentator, though it is quite likely that the author<br/>
himself may have gone through such calculations and even have<br/>
inserted them as a note to his text.<br/></p>
<p>Here they halted forty-five days, during which they first of all
sacrificed to the gods, and instituted processions, each set of the
Hellenes according to their several tribes, with gymnastic contests.
Provisions they got in meanwhile, partly from Paphlagonia, partly from the
estates of the Cotyorites, for the latter would neither provide them a
market nor receive their sick within their walls.</p>
<p>Meanwhile ambassadors arrived from Sinope, full of fears, not only for the
Cotyorites and their city, which belonged to Sinope, and brought in
tribute, but also for the territory which, as they had heard, was being
pillaged. Accordingly they came to the camp and made a speech.
Hecatonymus, who was reported to be a clever orator, acted as their
spokesman: "Soldiers," he said, "the city of the Sinopeans has sent us to
offer you, as Hellenes, our compliments and congratulations on your
victories over the barbarians; and next, to express our joyful
satisfaction that you have surmounted all those terrible sufferings of
which we have heard, and have reached this place in safety. As Hellenes we
claim to receive at your hands, as fellow-Hellenes, kindness and not harm.
We have certainly not ourselves set you an example heretofore of evil
treatment. Now the Cotyorites are our colonists. It was we who gave them
this country to dwell in, having taken it from the barbarians; for which
reason also they, with the men of Cerasus and Trapezus, pay us an
appointed tribute. So that, whatever mischief you inflict on the men of
Cotyora, the city of Sinope takes as personal to herself. At the present
time we hear that you have made forcible entry into their city, some of
you, and are quartered in the houses, besides taking forcibly from the
Cotyorite estates whatever you need, by hook and by crook. Now against
these things we enter protest. If you mean to go on so doing, you will
drive us to make friends with Corylas and the Paphlagonians, or any one
else we can find."</p>
<p>To meet these charges Xenophon, on behalf of the soldiers, rose and said:
"As to ourselves, men of Sinope, having got so far, we are well content to
have saved our bodies and our arms. Indeed it was impossible at one and
the same moment to keep our enemies at bay and to despoil them of their
goods and chattels. And now, since we have reached Hellenic cities, how
has it fared with us? At Trapezus they gave us a market, and we paid for
our provisions at a fair market price. In return for the honour they did
us, and the gifts of hospitality they gave the army, we requited them with
honour. Where the barbarian was friendly to them, we stayed our hands from
injury; or under their escort, we did damage to their enemies to the
utmost of our power. Ask them, what sort of people they found us. They are
here, some of them, to answer for themselves. Their fellow-citizens and
the state of Trapezus, for friendship's sake, have sent them with us to
act as our guides.</p>
<p>"But wherever we come, be it foreign or Hellenic soil, and find no market
for provisions, we are wont to help ourselves, not out of insolence but
from necessity. There have been tribes like the Carduchians, the
Taochians, the Chaldaeans, which, albeit they were not subject to the
great king, yet were no less formidable than independent. These we had to
bring over by our arms. The necessity of getting provisions forced us;
since they refused to offer us a market. Whereas some other folk, like the
Macrones, in spite of their being barbarians, we regarded as our friends,
simply because they did provide us with the best market in their power,
and we took no single thing of theirs by force. But, to come to these
Cotyorites, whom you claim to be your people, if we have taken aught from
them, they have themselves to blame, for they did not deal with us as
friends, but shut their gates in our faces. They would neither welcome us
within nor furnish us with a market without. The only justification they
alleged was that your governor (2) had authorised this conduct.</p>
<p>(2) Lit. "harmost". The term, denoting properly a governor of the<br/>
islands and foreign cities sent out by the Lacedaemonians during<br/>
their supremacy, came, it would seem, to be adopted by other Greek<br/>
communities under somewhat similar circumstances. Cotyora receives<br/>
a harmost from her mother-city, Sinope. For the Greek colonies<br/>
here mentioned, see Kiepert's "Man. Anct. Geog." (Engl. tr., Mr.<br/>
G. A. Macmillan), p. 63.<br/></p>
<p>"As to your assertion," he continued, turning to Hecatonymus, "that we
have got in by force and have taken up quarters, this is what we did. We
requested them to receive our sick and wounded under cover; and when they
refused to open their gates, we walked in where the place itself invited
us. All the violence we have committed amounts to this, that our sick folk
are quartered under cover, paying for their expenses, and we keep a sentry
at the gates, so that our sick and wounded may not lie at the mercy of
your governor, but we may have it in our power to remove them whenever we
like. The rest of us, you observe, are camping under the canopy of heaven,
in regular rank and file, and we are ready to requite kindness with
kindness, but to repel evil vigorously. And as for your threat," he said,
once again turning to the spokesman, "that you will, if it suits you, make
alliance with Corylas and the Paphlagonians to attack us, for our part, we
have no objection to fighting both sets of you, if so be we must; we have
already fought others many times more numerous than you. Besides, 'if it
suits us,' as you put it, to make the Paphlagonian our friend (report says
that he has a hankering after your city and some other places on the
seaboard), we can enhance the value of our friendship by helping to win
for him what he covets."</p>
<p>Thereupon the ambassadors showed very plainly their annoyance with
Hecatonymus, on account of the style of his remarks, and one of them stept
forward to explain that their intention in coming was not at all to raise
a war, but on the contrary to demonstrate their friendliness. "And if you
come to Sinope itself," the speaker continued, "we will welcome you there
with gifts of hospitality. Meanwhile we will enjoin upon the citizens of
this place to give you what they can; for we can see that every word of
what you say is true." Thereupon the Cotyorites sent gifts of hospitality,
and the generals of the Hellenes entertained the ambassadors of the
Sinopeans. Many and friendly were the topics of conversation; freely
flowed the talk on things in general; and, in particular, both parties
were able to make inquiries and satisfy their curiosity concerning the
remaining portion of the march.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0042" id="link2H_4_0042"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>Such was the conclusion of that day. On the following day the generals
summoned an assembly of the soldiers, when it was resolved to invite the
men of Sinope, and to take advice with them touching the remainder of the
journey. In the event of their having to continue it on foot, the
Sinopeans through their acquaintance with Paphlagonia would be useful to
them; while, if they had to go by sea, the services of the same people
would be at a premium; for who but they could furnish ships sufficient for
the army? Accordingly, they summoned their ambassadors, and took counsel
with them, begging them, on the strength of the sacred ties which bind
Hellenes to Hellenes, to inaugurate the good reception they had spoken of,
by present kindliness and their best advice.</p>
<p>Hecatonymus rose and wished at once to offer an apology with regard to
what he had said about the possibility of making friends with the
Paphlagonians. "The words were not intended," he said, "to convey a
threat, as though they were minded to go to war with the Hellenes, but as
meaning rather: albeit we have it in our power to be friendly with the
barbarians, we will choose the Hellenes." Then, being urged to aid them by
some advice, with a pious ejaculation, he commenced: "If I bestow upon you
the best counsel I am able, God grant that blessings in abundance may
descend on me; but if the contrary, may evil betide me! 'Sacred counsel
(1),' as the saying goes—well, sirs, if ever the saying held, it
should hold I think to-day; when, if I be proved to have given you good
counsel, I shall not lack panegyrists, or if evil, your imprecations will
be many-tongued.</p>
<p>(1) Cf. Plato, "Theages," 122.<br/></p>
<p>"As to trouble, I am quite aware, we shall have much more trouble if you
are conveyed by sea, for we must provide the vessels; whereas, if you go
by land, all the fighting will evolve on you. Still, let come what may, it
behoves me to state my views. I have an intimate acquaintance with the
country of the Paphlagonians and their power. The country possesses the
two features of hill and vale, that is to say, the fairest plains and the
highest mountains. To begin with the mountains, I know the exact point at
which you must make your entry. It is precisely where the horns of a
mountain tower over both sides of the road. Let the merest handful of men
occupy these and they can hold the pass with ease; for when that is done
not all the enemies in the world could effect a passage. I could point out
the whole with my finger, if you like to send any one with me to the
scene.</p>
<p>"So much for the mountain barrier. But the next thing I know is that there
are plains and a cavalry which the barbarians themselves hold to be
superior to the entire cavalry of the great king. Why, only the other day
these people refused to present themselves to the summons of the king;
their chief is too proud for that.</p>
<p>"But now, supposing you were able to seize the mountain barrier, by
stealth, or expedition, before the enemy could stop you; supposing
further, you were able to win an engagement in the plain against not only
their cavalry but their more than one hundred and twenty thousand infantry—you
will only find yourself face to face with rivers, a series of them. First
the Thermodon, three hundred feet broad, which I take it will be difficult
to pass, especially with a host of foes in front and another following
behind. Next comes the Iris river, three hundred feet broad; and thirdly,
the Halys, at least two furlongs broad, which you could not possibly cross
without vessels, and who is going to supply you with vessels? In the same
way too the Parthenius is impassable, which you will reach if you cross
the Halys. For my part, then, I consider the land-journey, I will not say
difficult, but absolutely impossible for you. Whereas if you go by sea,
you can coast along from here to Sinope, and from Sinope to Heraclea. From
Heraclea onwards there is no difficulty, whether by land or by sea; for
there are plenty of vessels at Heraclea."</p>
<p>After he had finished his remarks, some of his hearers thought they
detected a certain bias in them. He would not have spoken so, but for his
friendship with Corylas, whose official representative he was. Others
guessed he had an itching palm, and that he was hoping to receive a
present for his "sacred advice." Others again suspected that his object
was to prevent their going by foot and doing some mischief to the country
of the Sinopeans. However that might be, the Hellenes voted in favour of
continuing the journey by sea. After this Xenophon said: "Sinopeans, the
army has chosen that method of procedure which you advise, and thus the
matter stands. If there are sure to be vessels enough to make it
impossible for a single man to be left behind, go by sea we will; but if
part of us are to be left while part go by sea, we will not set foot on
board the vessels. One fact we plainly recognise, strength is everything
to us. So long as we have the mastery, we shall be able to protect
ourselves and get provisions; but if we are once caught at the mercy of
our foes, it is plain, we shall be reduced to slavery." On hearing this
the ambassadors bade them send an embassy, which they did, to wit,
Callimachus the Arcadian, and Ariston the Athenian, and Samolas the
Achaean.</p>
<p>So these set off, but meanwhile a thought shaped itself in the mind of
Xenophon, as there before his eyes lay that vast army of Hellene hoplites,
and that other array of peltasts, archers, and slingers, with cavalry to
boot, and all in a state of thorough efficiency from long practice,
hardened veterans, and all collected in Pontus, where to raise so large a
force would cost a mint of money. Then the idea dawned upon him: how noble
an opportunity to acquire new territory and power for Hellas, by the
founding of a colony—a city of no mean size, moreover, said he to
himself, as he reckoned up their own numbers—and besides themselves
a population planted on the shores of Pontus. Thereupon he summoned
Silanus the Ambraciot, the soothsayer of Cyrus above mentioned, and before
breathing a syllable to any of the soldiers, he consulted the victims by
sacrifice.</p>
<p>But Silanus, in apprehension lest these ideas might embody themselves, and
the army be permanently halted at some point or other, set a tale going
among the men, to the effect that Xenophon was minded to detain the army
and found a city in order to win himself a name and acquire power, Silanus
himself being minded to reach Hellas with all possible speed, for the
simple reason that he had still got the three thousand darics presented to
him by Cyrus on the occasion of the sacrifice when he hit the truth so
happily about the ten days. Silanus's story was variously received, some
few of the soldiers thinking it would be an excellent thing to stay in
that country; but the majority were strongly averse. The next incident was
that Timasion the Dardanian, with Thorax the Boeotian, addressed
themselves to some Heracleot and Sinopean traders who had come to Cotyora,
and told them that if they did not find means to furnish the army with pay
sufficient to keep them in provisions on the homeward voyage, all that
great force would most likely settle down permanently in Pontus. "Xenophon
has a pet idea," they continued, "which he urges upon us. We are to wait
until the ships come, and then we are suddenly to turn round to the army
and say: 'Soldiers, we now see the straits we are in, unable to keep
ourselves in provisions on the return voyage, or to make our friends at
home a little present at the end of our journey. But if you like to select
some place on the inhabited seaboard of the Black Sea which may take your
fancy and there put in, this is open to you to do. Those who like to go
home, go; those who care to stay here, stay. You have got vessels now, so
that you can make a sudden pounce upon any point you choose.'"</p>
<p>The merchants went off with this tale and reported it to every city they
came to in turn, nor did they go alone, but Timasion the Dardanian sent a
fellow-citizen of his own, Eurymachus, with the Boeotian Thorax, to repeat
the same story. So when it reached the ears of the men of Sinope and the
Heracleots, they sent to Timasion and pressed him to accept of a gratuity,
in return for which he was to arrange for the departure of the troops.
Timasion was only too glad to hear this, and he took the opportunity when
the soldiers were convened in meeting to make the following remarks:
"Soldiers," he said, "do not set your thoughts on staying here; let
Hellas, and Hellas only, be the object of your affection, for I am told
that certain persons have been sacrificing on this very question, without
saying a word to you. Now I can promise you, if you once leave these
waters, to furnish you with regular monthly pay, dating from the first of
the month, at the rate of one cyzicene (2) a head per month. I will bring
you to the Troad, from which part I am an exile, and my own state is at
your service. They will receive me with open arms. I will be your guide
personally, and I will take you to places where you will get plenty of
money. I know every corner of the Aeolid, and Phrygia, and the Troad, and
indeed the whole satrapy of Pharnabazus, partly because it is my
birthplace, partly from campaigns in that region with Clearchus and
Dercylidas (3)."</p>
<p>(2) A cyzicene stater = twenty-eight silver drachmae of Attic money<br/>
B.C. 335, in the time of Demosthenes; but, like the daric, this<br/>
gold coin would fluctuate in value relatively to silver. It<br/>
contained more grains of gold than the daric.<br/>
<br/>
(3) Of Dercylidas we hear more in the "Hellenica." In B.C. 411 he was<br/>
harmost at Abydos; in B.C. 399 he superseded Thimbron in Asia<br/>
Minor; and was himself superseded by Agesilaus in B.C. 396.<br/></p>
<p>No sooner had he ceased than up got Thorax the Boeotian. This was a man
who had a standing battle with Xenophon about the generalship of the army.
What he said was that, if they once got fairly out of the Euxine, there
was the Chersonese, a beautiful and prosperous country, where they could
settle or not, as they chose. Those who liked could stay; and those who
liked could return to their homes; how ridiculous then, when there was so
much territory in Hellas and to spare, to be poking about (4) in the land
of the barbarian. "But until you find yourselves there," he added, "I, no
less than Timasion, can guarantee you regular pay." This he said, knowing
what promises had been made Timasion by the men of Heraclea and Sinope to
induce them to set sail.</p>
<p>(4) The word {masteuein} occurs above, and again below, and in other<br/>
writings of our author. It is probably Ionic or old Attic, and<br/>
occurs in poetry.<br/></p>
<p>Meanwhile Xenophon held his peace. Then up got Philesius and Lycon, two
Achaeans: "It was monstrous," they said, "that Xenophon should be
privately persuading people to stop there, and consulting the victims for
that end, without letting the army into the secret, or breathing a
syllable in public about the matter." When it came to this, Xenophon was
forced to get up, and speak as follows: "Sirs, you are well aware that my
habit is to sacrifice at all times; whether in your own behalf or my own,
I strive in every thought, word, and deed to be directed as is best for
yourselves and for me. And in the present instance my sole object was to
learn whether it were better even so much as to broach the subject, and so
take action, or to have absolutely nothing to do with the project. Now
Silanus the soothsayer assured me by his answer of what was the main
point: 'the victims were favourable.' No doubt Silanus knew that I was not
unversed myself in his lore, as I have so often assisted at the sacrifice;
but he added that there were symptoms in the victims of some guile or
conspiracy against me. That was a happy discovery on his part, seeing that
he was himself conspiring at the moment to traduce me before you; since it
was he who set the tale going that I had actually made up my mind to carry
out these projects without procuring your consent. Now, for my part, if I
saw that you were in any difficulties, I should set myself to discover how
you might capture a city, on the understanding of course that all who
wished might sail away at once, leaving those who did not wish, to follow
at a later date, with something perhaps in their pockets to benefit their
friends at home. Now, however, as I see that the men of Heraclea and
Sinope are to send you ships to assist you to sail away, and more than one
person guarantees to give you regular monthly pay, it is, I admit, a rare
chance to be safely piloted to the haven of our hopes, and at the same
time to receive pay for our preservation. For myself I have done with that
dream, and to those, who came to me to urge these projects, my advice is
to have done with them. In fact, this is my view. As long as you stay
together united as to-day, you will command respect and procure
provisions; for might certainly exercises a right over what belongs to the
weaker. But once broken up, with your force split into bits, you will
neither be able to get subsistence, nor indeed will you get off without
paying dearly for it. In fact, my resolution coincides precisely with
yours. It is that we should set off for Hellas, and if any one stops
behind, or is caught deserting before the whole army is in safety, let him
be judged as an evil-doer. Pray let all who are in favour of this
proposition hold up their hands."</p>
<p>They all held them up; only Silanus began shouting and vainly striving to
maintain the right of departure for all who liked to depart. But the
soldiers would not suffer him, threatening him that if he were himself
caught attempting to run away they would inflict the aforesaid penalty.
After this, when the Heracleots learned that the departure by sea was
resolved upon, and that the measure itself emanated from Xenophon, they
sent the vessels indeed; but as to the money which they had promised to
Timasion and Thorax as pay for the soldiers, they were not as good as
their word, in fact they cheated them both. Thus the two who had
guaranteed regular monthly pay were utterly confounded, and stood in
terror of the soldiers. What they did then, was to take to them the other
generals to whom they had communicated their former transactions (that is
to say, all except Neon the Asniaean, who, as lieutenant-general, was
acting for Cheirisophus during his continued absence). This done they came
in a body to Xenophon and said that their views were changed. As they had
now got the ships, they thought it best to sail to the Phasis, and seize
the territory of the Phasians (whose present king was a descendant of
Aeetes (5)). Xenophon's reply was curt:—Not one syllable would he
have to say himself to the army in this matter, "But," he added, "if you
like, you can summon an assembly and have your say." Thereupon Timasion
the Dardanian set forth as his opinion:—It were best to hold no
parliament at present, but first to go and conciliate, each of them, his
own officers. Thus they went away and proceeded to execute their plans.</p>
<p>(5) Aeetes is the patronym of the kings of Colchis from mythical times<br/>
onwards; e.g. Medea was the daughter of Aeetes.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0043" id="link2H_4_0043"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VII </h2>
<p>Presently the soldiers came to learn what was in course of agitation, and
Neon gave out that Xenophon had persuaded the other generals to adopt his
views, and had a plan to cheat the soldiers and take them back to the
Phasis. The soldiers were highly indignant; meetings were held; little
groups gathered ominously; and there seemed an alarming probability that
they would repeat the violence with which they had lately treated the
heralds of the Colchians and the clerks of the market; when all who did
not save themselves by jumping into the sea were stoned to death. So
Xenophon, seeing what a storm was brewing, resolved to anticipate matters
so far as to summon a meeting of the men without delay, and thus prevent
their collecting of their own accord, and he ordered the herald to
announce an assembly. The voice of the herald was no sooner heard than
they rushed with great readiness to the place of meeting. Then Xenophon,
without accusing the generals of having come to him, made the following
speech: "I hear that a charge is brought against me. It is I apparently
who am going to cheat you and carry you off to Phasis. I beg you by all
that is holy to listen to me; and if there be found any guilt in me, let
me not leave this place till I have paid the penalty of my misdoing; but
if my accusers are found guilty, treat them as they deserve. I presume,
sirs, you know where the sun rises and where he sets, and that he who
would go to Hellas must needs journey towards the sunset; whereas he who
seeks the land of the barbarian must contrariwise fix his face towards the
dawn. Now is that a point in which a man might hope to cheat you? Could
any one make you believe that the sun rises here and sets there, or that
he sets here and rises there? And doubtless you know this too, that it is
Boreas, the north wind, who bears the mariner out of Pontus towards
Hellas, and the south wind inwards towards the Phasis, whence the saying—</p>
<p>"'When the North wind doth blow<br/>
Home to Hellas we will go (1).'<br/>
<br/>
(1) Whether this was a local saying or a proverb I cannot say. The<br/>
words have a poetical ring about them: "When Borrhas blows, fair<br/>
voyages to Hellas."<br/></p>
<p>"He would be a clever fellow who could befool you into embarking with a
south wind blowing. That sounds all very well, you think, only I may get
you on board during a calm. Granted, but I shall be on board my one ship,
and you on board another hundred at least, and how am I to constrain you
to voyage with me against your will, or by what cajolery shall I carry you
off? But I will imagine you so far befooled and bewitched by me, that I
have got you to the Phasis; we proceed to disembark on dry land. At last
it will come out, that wherever you are, you are not in Hellas, and the
inventor of the trick will be one sole man, and you who have been caught
by it will number something like ten thousand with swords in your hands. I
do not know how a man could better ensure his own punishment than by
embarking on such a policy with regards to himself and you.</p>
<p>"Nay, these tales are the invention of silly fellows who are jealous of
the honour you bestow on me. A most uncalled-for jealousy! Do I hinder any
of them from speaking any word of import in his power? of striking a blow
in your behalf and his own, if that is his choice? or, finally, of keeping
his eyes and ears open to secure your safety? What is it? In your choice
of leaders do I stand in the way of any one, is that it? Let him step
forward, I yield him place; he shall be your general; only he must prove
that he has your good at heart.</p>
<p>"For myself, I have done; but for yourselves, if any of you conceive
either that he himself could be the victim of a fraud, or that he could
victimise any one else in such a thing as this, let him open his lips and
explain to us how. Take your time, but when you have sifted the matter to
your hearts' content, do not go away without suffering me to tell you of
something which I see looming. If it should burst upon us and prove in
fact anything like what it gives signs of being now, it is time for us to
take counsel for ourselves and see that we do not prove ourselves to be
the worst and basest of men in the sight of gods and men, be they friends
or be they foes." The words moved the curiosity of the soldiers. They
marvelled what this matter might be, and bade him explain. Thereupon he
began again: "You will not have forgotten certain places in the hills—barbaric
fastnesses, but friendly to the Cerasuntines—from which people used
to come down and sell us large cattle and other things which they
possessed, and if I mistake not, some of you went to the nearest of these
places and made purchases in the market and came back again. Clearetus the
captain learnt of this place, that it was but a little one and unguarded.
Why should it be guarded since it was friendly? so the folk thought. Thus
he stole upon it in the dead of night, and meant to sack it without saying
a word to any of us. His design was, if he took the place, not to return
again to the army, but to mount a vessel which, with his messmates on
board her, was sailing past at the time, and stowing away what he had
seized, to set sail and begone beyond the Euxine. All this had been agreed
upon and arranged with his comrades on board the vessel, as I now
discover. Accordingly, he summoned to his side all whom he could persuade,
and set off at their head against the little place. But dawn overtook him
on his march. The men collected out of their strongholds, and whether from
a distance or close quarters, made such a fight that they killed Clearetus
and a good many of the rest, and only a few of them got safe back to
Cerasus.</p>
<p>"These things took place on the day on which we started to come hither on
foot; while some of those who were to go by sea were still at Cerasus, not
having as yet weighed anchor. After this, according to what the
Cerasuntines state, there arrived three inhabitants of the place which had
been attacked; three elderly men, seeking an interview with our public
assembly. Not finding us, they addressed themselves to the men of Cerasus,
and told them, they were astonished that we should have thought it right
to attack them; however, when, as the Cerasuntines assert, they had
assured them that the occurrence was not authorised by public consent,
they were pleased, and proposed to sail here, not only to state to us what
had occurred, but to offer that those who were interested should take up
and bury the bodies of the slain.</p>
<p>"But among the Hellenes still at Cerasus were some of those who had
escaped. They found out in which direction the barbarians were minded to
go, and not only had the face themselves to pelt them with stones, but
vociferously encouraged their neighbours to do the same. The three men—ambassadors,
mark you—were slain, stoned to death. After this occurrence, the men
of Cerasus came to us and reported the affair, and we generals, on being
informed, were annoyed at what had taken place, and took counsel with the
Cerasuntines how the dead bodies of the Hellenes might be buried. While
seated in conclave outside the camp, we suddenly were aware of a great
hubbub. We heard cries: 'Cut them down!' 'Shoot them!' 'Stone them!' and
presently we caught sight of a mass of people racing towards us with
stones in their hands, and others picking them up. The Cerasuntines,
naturally enough, considering the incident they had lately witnessed,
retired in terror to their vessels, and, upon my word, some of us did not
feel too comfortable. All I could do was to go to them and inquire what it
all meant. Some of them had not the slightest notion, although they had
stones in their hands, but chancing on some one who was better informed, I
was told by him that 'the clerks of the market were treating the army most
scandalously.' Just then some one got sight of the market clerk,
Zelarchus, making his way off towards the sea, and lifted up his voice
aloud, and the rest responding to the cry as if a wild boar or a stag had
been started, they rushed upon him.</p>
<p>"The Cerasuntines, seeing a rush in their direction, thought that, without
a doubt, it was directed against themselves, and fled with all speed and
threw themselves into the sea, in which proceeding they were imitated by
some few of our own men, and all who did not know how to swim were
drowned. But now, what do you think of their case, these men of Cerasus?
They had done no wrong. They were simply afraid that some madness had
seized us, like that to which dogs are liable.</p>
<p>"I say then, if proceedings like this are to be the order of the day, you
had better consider what the ultimate condition of the army is like to be.
As a body you will not have it in your power to undertake war against whom
you like, or to conclude peace. But in private any one who chooses will
conduct the army on any quest which takes his fancy. And when ambassadors
come to you to demand peace, or whatever it may be, officious people will
put them to death and prevent your hearing the proposals which brought
them to you. The next step will be that those whom you as a body may
choose as generals will be of no account; but any one who likes to elect
himself general, and will adopt the formula 'Shoot him! shoot him!' will
be competent to cut down whomsoever he pleases untried, be it general or
private soldier, if only he have sufficient followers, as was the case
just now. But just consider what these self-appointed generals have
achieved for you. Zelarchus, the clerk of the market, may possibly have
done you a wrong; if so, he has sailed off and is gone without paying you
any penalty; or he may be guiltless, in which case we have driven him from
the army in terror of perishing unjustly without a trial. While those who
stoned the ambassadors have contrived so cleverly that we alone of all
Hellenes cannot approach Cerasus safely without a strong force, and the
corpses which the very men who slew them themselves invited us to bury, we
cannot now pick up with safety even under a flag of truce. Who indeed
would care to carry a flag of truce, or go as a herald with the blood of
heralds upon his hands? All we could do was to implore the Cerasuntines to
bury them.</p>
<p>"If then you approve of such doings, have a resolution passed to that
effect, so that, with a prospect of like occurrences in the future, a man
may privately set up a guard and do his best to fix his tent where he can
find a strong position with a commanding site. If, however, these seem to
you to be the deeds rather of wild beasts than of human beings, bethink
you of some means by which to stay them; or else, in heaven's name, how
shall we do sacrifice to the gods gladly, with impious deeds to answer
for? or how shall we, who lay the knife to each other's throats, give
battle to our enemies? What friendly city will receive us when they see
rampant lawlessness in our midst? Who will have the courage to afford us a
market, when we prove our worthlessness in these weightiest concerns? and
what becomes of the praise we expect to win from the mouths of men? who
will vouchsafe it to us, if this is our behaviour? Should we not ourselves
bestow the worst of names on the perpetrators of like deeds?"</p>
<p>After this they rose, and, as one man, proposed that the ringleaders in
these matters should be punished; and that for the future, to set an
example of lawlessness should be forbidden. Every such ringleader was to
be prosecuted on the capital charge; the generals were to bring all
offenders to the bar of justice; prosecutions for all other misdemeanours
committed since the death of Cyrus were to be instituted; and they ended
by constituting the officers into a board of dicasts (2); and upon the
strong representation of Xenophon, with the concurrence of the
soothsayers, it was resolved to purify the army, and this purification was
made.</p>
<p>(2) I.e. a board of judges or jurors.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0044" id="link2H_4_0044"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VIII </h2>
<p>It was further resolved that the generals themselves should undergo a
judicial examination in reference to their conduct in past time. In course
of investigation, Philesius and Xanthicles respectively were condemned to
pay a sum of twenty minae, to meet a deficiency to that amount incurred
during the guardianship of the cargoes of the merchantmen. Sophaenetus was
fined ten minae for inadequate performance of his duty as one of the chief
officers selected. Against Xenophon a charge was brought by certain
people, who asserted that they had been beaten by him, and framed the
indictment as one of personal outrage with violence (1). Xenophon got up
and demanded that the first speaker should state "where and when it was he
had received these blows." The other, so challenged, answered, "When we
were perishing of cold and there was a great depth of snow." Xenophon
said: "Upon my word, with weather such as you describe, when our
provisions had run out, when the wine could not even be smelt, when
numbers were dropping down dead beat, so acute was the suffering, with the
enemy close on our heels; certainly, if at such a season as that I was
guilty of outrage, I plead guilty to being a more outrageous brute than
the ass, which is too wanton, they say, to feel fatigue. Still, I wish you
would tell us," said he, "what led to my striking you. Did I ask you for
something and, on your refusing it to me, did I proceed to beat you? Was
it a debt, for which I demanded payment? or a quarrel about some boy or
other? Was I the worse for liquor, and behaving like a drunkard?" When the
man met each of these questions with a negative, he questioned him
further: "Are you a heavy infantry soldier?" "No," said he. "A peltast,
then?" "No, nor yet a peltast"; but he had been ordered by his messmates
to drive a mule, although he was a free man. Then at last he recognised
him, and inquired: "Are you the fellow who carried home the sick man?"
"Yes, I am," said he, "thanks to your driving; and you made havoc of my
messmates' kit." "Havoc!" said Xenophon: "Nay, I distributed it; some to
one man, some to another to carry, and bade them bring the things safely
to me; and when I got them back I delivered them all safely to you, and
you, on your side, had rendered an account to me of the man. Let me tell
you," he continued, turning to the court, "what the circumstances were; it
is worth hearing:—</p>
<p>(1) See the "Dict. of Antiq." 622 a. HYBREOS GRAPHE. In the case of<br/>
common assaults as opposed to indecent assault, the prosecution<br/>
seems to have been allowable only when the object of a wanton<br/>
attack was a free person. Cf. Arist. "Rhet." ii. 24.<br/></p>
<p>"A man was left behind from inability to proceed farther; I recognised the
poor fellow sufficiently to see that he was one of ours, and I forced you,
sir, to carry him to save his life. For if I am not much mistaken, the
enemy were close at our heels?" The fellow assented to this. "Well then,"
said Xenophon, "after I had sent you forward, I overtook you again, as I
came up with the rearguard; you were digging a trench with intent to bury
the man; I pulled up and said something in commendation; as we stood by
the poor fellow twitched his leg, and the bystanders all cried out, 'Why,
the man's alive!' Your remark was: 'Alive or not as he likes, I am not
going to carry him' Then I struck you. Yes! you are right, for it looked
very much as if you knew him to be alive." "Well," said he, "was he any
the less dead when I reported him to you?" "Nay," retorted Xenophon, "by
the same token we shall all one day be dead, but that is no reason why
meantime we should all be buried alive?" Then there was a general shout:
"If Xenophon had given the fellow a few more blows, it might have been
better." The others were now called upon to state the grounds on which
they had been beaten in each case; but when they refused to get up, he
proceeded to state them himself.</p>
<p>"I confess, sirs, to having struck certain men for failure in discipline.
These were men who were quite content to owe their safety to us. Whilst
the rest of the world marched on in rank and did whatever fighting had to
be done, they preferred to leave the ranks, and rush forward to loot and
enrich themselves at our expense. Now, if this conduct were to be the
rule, general ruin would be the result. I do not deny that I have given
blows to this man or the other who played the poltroon and refused to get
up, helplessly abandoning himself to the enemy; and so I forced them to
march on. For once in the severe wintry weather I myself happened to sit
down for a long time, whilst waiting for a party who were getting their
kit together, and I discovered how difficult it was to get up again and
stretch one's legs. After this personal experience, whenever I saw any one
else seated in slack and lazy mood, I tried to spur him on. The mere
movement and effort to play the man caused warmth and moisture, whereas it
was plain that sitting down and keeping quiet helped the blood to freeze
and the toes to mortify, calamities which really befell several of the
men, as you yourselves are aware.</p>
<p>"I can imagine a third case, that of some straggler stopping behind,
merely to rest for rest's sake, and hindering you in front and us behind
alike from pressing on the march. If he got a blow with the fist from me
it saved him a thrust with the lance from the enemy. In fact, the
opportunity they enjoy to-day of taking vengeance on me for any treatment
which I put upon them wrongfully, is derived from their salvation then;
whereas, if they had fallen into the enemy's hands, let them ask
themselves for what outrage, however great, they could expect to get
satisfaction now. My defence," he continued, "is simple: if I chastised
any one for his own good, I claim to suffer the same penalties as parents
pay their children or masters their boys. Does not the surgeon also
cauterise and cut us for our good? But if you really believe that these
acts are the outcome of wanton insolence, I beg you to observe that
although to-day, thank God! I am heartier than formerly, I wear a bolder
front now than then, and I drink more wine, yet I never strike a soul; no,
for I see that you have reached smooth water. When storm arises, and a
great sea strikes the vessel amidships, a mere shake of the head will make
the look-out man furious with the crew in the forecastle, or the helmsman
with the men in the stern sheets, for at such a crisis even a slight slip
may ruin everything. But I appeal to your own verdict, already recorded,
in proof that I was justified in striking these men. You stood by, sirs,
with swords, not voting tablets, in your hands, and it was in your power
to aid the fellows if you liked; but, to speak the honest truth, you
neither aided them nor did you join me in striking the disorderly. In
other words, you enabled any evilly-disposed person among them to give
rein to his wantonness by your passivity. For if you will be at pains to
investigate, you will find that those who were then most cowardly are the
ringleaders to-day in brutality and outrage.</p>
<p>"There is Boiscus the boxer, a Thessalian, what a battle he fought then to
escape carrying his shield! so tired was he, and to-day I am told he has
stripped several citizens of Cotyora of the clothes on their backs. If
then you are wise, you will treat this personage in a way the contrary to
that in which men treat dogs. A savage dog is tied up on the day and
loosed at night, but if you are wise you will tie this fellow up at night
and only let him loose in the day.</p>
<p>"But really," he added, "it does surprise me with what keenness you
remember and recount the times when I incurred the hatred of some one; but
some other occasions when I eased the burden of winter and storm for any
of you, or beat off an enemy, or helped to minister to you in sickness and
want, not a soul of you remembers these. Or when for any noble deed done
by any of you I praised the doer, and according to my ability did honour
to this brave man or that; these things have slipped from your memories,
and are clean forgotten. Yet it were surely more noble, just, and holy,
sweeter and kindlier to treasure the memory of good rather than of evil."</p>
<p>He ended, and then one after another of the assembly got up and began
recalling incidents of the kind suggested, and things ended not so
unpleasantly after all.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0045" id="link2H_4_0045"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK VI </h2>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0046" id="link2H_4_0046"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>After this, whilst waiting, they lived partly on supplies from the market,
partly on the fruit of raids into Paphlagonia. The Paphlagonians, on their
side, showed much skill in kidnapping stragglers, wherever they could lay
hands on them, and in the night time tried to do mischief to those whose
quarters were at a distance from the camp. The result was that their
relations to one another were exceedingly hostile, so much so that
Corylas, who was the chief of Paphlagonia at that date, sent ambassadors
to the Hellenes, bearing horses and fine apparel, and charged with a
proposal on the part of Corylas to make terms with the Hellenes on the
principle of mutual forbearance from injuries. The generals replied that
they would consult with the army about the matter. Meanwhile they gave
them a hospitable reception, to which they invited certain members of the
army whose claims were obvious. They sacrificed some of the captive cattle
and other sacrificial beasts, and with these they furnished forth a
sufficiently festal entertainment, and reclining on their truckle beds,
fell to eating and drinking out of beakers made of horn which they
happened to find in the country.</p>
<p>But as soon as the libation was ended and they had sung the hymn, up got
first some Thracians, who performed a dance under arms to the sound of a
pipe, leaping high into the air with much nimbleness, and brandishing
their swords, till at last one man struck his fellow, and every one
thought he was really wounded, so skilfully and artistically did he fall,
and the Paphlagonians screamed out. Then he that gave the blow stripped
the other of his arms, and marched off chanting the "Sitalcas (1)," whilst
others of the Thracians bore off the other, who lay as if dead, though he
had not received even a scratch.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. the national Thracian hymn; for Sitalcas the king, a national<br/>
hero, see Thuc. ii. 29.<br/></p>
<p>After this some Aenianians (2) and Magnesians got up and fell to dancing
the Carpaea, as it is called, under arms. This was the manner of the
dance: one man lays aside his arms and proceeds to drive a yoke of oxen,
and while he drives he sows, turning him about frequently, as though he
were afraid of something; up comes a cattle-lifter, and no sooner does the
ploughman catch sight of him afar, than he snatches up his arms and
confronts him. They fight in front of his team, and all in rhythm to the
sound of the pipe. At last the robber binds the countryman and drives off
the team. Or sometimes the cattle-driver binds the robber, and then he
puts him under the yoke beside the oxen, with his two hands tied behind
his back, and off he drives.</p>
<p>(2) The Aenianians, an Aeolian people inhabiting the upper valley of<br/>
the Sperchius (the ancient Phthia); their capital was Hypata.<br/>
These men belonged to the army collected by Menon, the Thessalian.<br/>
So, doubtless, did the Magnesians, another Aeolian tribe occupying<br/>
the mountainous coast district on the east of Thessaly. See<br/>
Kiepert's "Man. Anct. Geog." (Macmillan's tr.), chap. vi.. 161,<br/>
170.<br/></p>
<p>After this a Mysian came in with a light shield in either hand and danced,
at one time going through a pantomime, as if he were dealing with two
assailants at once; at another plying his shields as if to face a single
foe, and then again he would whirl about and throw somersaults, keeping
the shields in his hands, so that it was a beautiful spectacle. Last of
all he danced the Persian dance, clashing the shields together, crouching
down on one knee and springing up again from earth; and all this he did in
measured time to the sound of the flute. After him the Mantineans stepped
upon the stage, and some other Arcadians also stood up; they had accoutred
themselves in all their warlike finery. They marched with measured tread,
pipes playing, to the tune of the 'warrior's march (3)'; the notes of the
paean rose, lightly their limbs moved in dance, as in solemn procession to
the holy gods. The Paphlagonians looked upon it as something truly strange
that all these dances should be under arms; and the Mysians, seeing their
astonishment persuaded one of the Arcadians who had got a dancing girl to
let him introduce her, which he did after dressing her up magnificently
and giving her a light shield. When, lithe of limb, she danced the Pyrrhic
(4), loud clapping followed; and the Paphlagonians asked, "If these women
fought by their side in battle?" to which they answered, "To be sure, it
was the women who routed the great King, and drove him out of camp." So
ended the night.</p>
<p>(3) See Plato, "Rep." 400 B, for this "war measure"; also Aristoph.<br/>
"Clouds," 653.<br/>
<br/>
(4) For this famous dance, supposed to be of Doric (Cretan or Spartan)<br/>
origin, see Smith's "Dict. of Antiquities," "Saltatio"; also Guhl<br/>
and Koner, "The Life of the Greeks and Romans," Eng. tr.<br/></p>
<p>But next day the generals introduced the embassy to the army, and the
soldiers passed a resolution in the sense proposed: between themselves and
the Paphlagonians there was to be a mutual abstinence from injuries. After
this the ambassadors went on their way, and the Hellenes, as soon as it
was thought that sufficient vessels had arrived, went on board ship, and
voyaged a day and a night with a fair breeze, keeping Paphlagonia on their
left. And on the following day, arriving at Sinope, they came to moorings
in the harbour of Harmene, near Sinope (5). The Sinopeans, though
inhabitants of Paphlagonia, are really colonists of the Milesians. They
sent gifts of hospitality to the Hellenes, three thousand measures of
barley with fifteen hundred jars of wine. At this place Cheirisophus
rejoined them with a man-of-war. The soldiers certainly expected that,
having come, he would have brought them something, but he brought them
nothing, except complimentary phrases, on the part of Anaxibius, the high
admiral, and the rest, who sent them their congratulations, coupled with a
promise on the part of Anaxibius that, as soon as they were outside the
Euxine, pay would be forthcoming.</p>
<p>(5) Harmene, a port of Sinope, between four and five miles (fifty<br/>
stades) west of that important city, itself a port town. See<br/>
Smith, "Dict. Geog.," "Sinope"; and Kiepert, op. cit. chap. iv.<br/>
60.<br/></p>
<p>At Harmene the army halted five days; and now that they seemed to be so
close to Hellas, the question how they were to reach home not empty-handed
presented itself more forcibly to their minds than heretofore. The
conclusion they came to was to appoint a single general, since one man
would be better able to handle the troops, by night or by day, than was
possible while the generalship was divided. If secrecy were desirable, it
would be easier to keep matters dark, or if again expedition were an
object, there would be less risk of arriving a day too late, since mutual
explanations would be avoided, and whatever approved itself to the single
judgement would at once be carried into effect, whereas previously the
generals had done everything in obedience to the opinion of the majority.</p>
<p>With these ideas working in their minds, they turned to Xenophon, and the
officers came to him and told him that this was how the soldiers viewed
matters; and each of them, displaying a warmth of kindly feeling, pressed
him to accept the office. Xenophon partly would have liked to do so, in
the belief that by so doing he would win to himself a higher repute in the
esteem of his friends, and that his name would be reported to the city
written large; and by some stroke of fortune he might even be the
discoverer of some blessing to the army collectively.</p>
<p>These and the like considerations elated him; he had a strong desire to
hold the supreme command. But then again, as he turned the matter over,
the conviction deepened in his mind that the issue of the future is to
every man uncertain; and hence there was the risk of perhaps losing such
reputation has he had already acquired. He was in sore straights, and, not
knowing how to decide, it seemed best to him to lay the matter before
heaven. Accordingly, he led two victims to the altar and made sacrifice to
Zeus the King, for it was he and no other who had been named by the oracle
at Delphi, and his belief was that the vision which he had beheld when he
first essayed to undertake the joint administration of the army was sent
to him by that god. He also recalled to mind a circumstance which befell
him still earlier, when setting out from Ephesus to associate himself with
Cyrus (6);—how an eagle screamed on his right hand from the east,
and still remained perched, and the soothsayer who was escorting him said
that it was a great and royal omen (7); indicating glory and yet
suffering; for the punier race of birds only attack the eagle when seated.
"Yet," added he, "it bodes not gain in money; for the eagle seizes his
food, not when seated, but on the wing."</p>
<p>(6) Cf. "Cyrop." II. i. 1; an eagle appears to Cyrus on the frontiers<br/>
of Persia, when about to join his uncle Cyaxares, king of Media,<br/>
on his expedition against the Assyrian.<br/>
<br/>
(7) It is important to note that the Greek word {oionos}, a solitary<br/>
or lone-flying bird, also means an omen. "It was a mighty bird and<br/>
a mighty omen."<br/></p>
<p>Thus Xenophon sacrificed, and the god as plainly as might be gave him a
sign, neither to demand the generalship, nor, if chosen, to accept the
office. And that was how the matter stood when the army met, and the
proposal to elect a single leader was unanimous. After this resolution was
passed, they proposed Xenophon for election, and when it seemed quite
evident that they would elect him, if he put the question to the vote, he
got up and spoke as follows:—</p>
<p>"Sirs, I am but mortal, and must needs be happy to be honoured by you. I
thank you, and am grateful, and my prayer is that the gods may grant me to
be an instrument of blessing to you. Still, when I consider it closer,
thus, in the presence of a Lacedaemonian, to be preferred by you as
general, seems to me but ill conducive either to your interests or to
mine, since you will the less readily obtain from them hereafter anything
you may need, while for myself I look upon acceptance as even somewhat
dangerous. Do I not see and know with what persistence these
Lacedaemonians prosecuted the war till finally they forced our State to
acknowledge the leadership of Lacedaemon? This confession once extorted
from their antagonists, they ceased warring at once, and the siege of the
city was at an end. If, with these facts before my eyes, I seem to be
doing all I can to neutralise their high self-esteem, I cannot escape the
reflection that personally I may be taught wisdom by a painful process.
But with your own idea that under a single general there will be less
factiousness than when there were many, be assured that in choosing some
other than me you will not find me factious. I hold that whosoever sets up
factious opposition to his leader factiously opposes his own safety. While
if you determine to choose me, I should not be surprised were that choice
to entail upon you and me the resentment of other people."</p>
<p>After those remarks on Xenophon's part, many more got up, one after
another, insisting on the propriety of his undertaking the command. One of
them, Agasias the Stymphalian, said: It was really ridiculous, if things
had come to this pass that the Lacedeamonians are to fly into a rage
because a number of friends have met together to dinner, and omitted to
choose a Lacedaemonian to sit at the head of the table. "Really, if that
is how matters stand," said he, "I do not see what right we have to be
officers even, we who are only Arcadians." That sally brought down the
plaudits of the assembly; and Xenophon, seeing that something more was
needed, stepped forward again and spoke, "Pardon, sirs," he said, "let me
make a clean breast of it. I swear to you by all the gods and goddesses;
verily and indeed, I no sooner perceived your purpose, than I consulted
the victims, whether it was better for you to entrust this leadership to
me, and for me to undertake it, or the reverse. And the gods vouchsafed a
sign to me so plain that even a common man might understand it, and
perceive that from such sovereignty I must needs hold myself aloof."</p>
<p>Under these circumstances they chose Cheirisophus, who, after his
election, stepped forward and said: "Nay, sirs, be well assured of this,
that had you chosen some one else, I for my part should not have set up
factious opposition. As to Xenophon, I believe you have done him a good
turn by not appointing him; for even now Dexippus has gone some way in
traducing him to Anaxibius, as far as it lay in his power to do so, and
that, in spite of my attempts to silence him. What he said was that he
believed Xenophon would rather share the command of Clearchus's army with
Timasion, a Dardanian, than with himself, a Laconian. But," continued
Cheirisophus, "since your choice has fallen upon me, I will make it my
endeavour to do you all the good in my power; so make your preparations to
weigh anchor to-morrow; wind and weather permitting, we will voyage to
Heraclea; every one must endeavour, therefore, to put in at that port; and
for the rest we will consult, when we are come thither."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0047" id="link2H_4_0047"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>The next day they weighed anchor and set sail from Harmene with a fair
breeze, two days' voyage along the coast. (As they coasted along they came
in sight of Jason's beach (1), where, as the story says, the ship Argo
came to moorings; and then the mouths of the rivers, first the Thermodon,
then the Iris, then the Halys, and next to it the Parthenius.) Coasting
past (the latter), they reached Heraclea (2), a Hellenic city and a colony
of the Megarians, situated in the territory of the Mariandynians. So they
came to anchorage off the Acherusian Chersonese, where Heracles (3) is
said to have descended to bring up the dog Cerberus, at a point where they
still show the marks of his descent, a deep cleft more than two furlongs
down. Here the Heracleots sent the Hellenes, as gifts of hospitality,
three thousand measures of barley and two thousand jars of wine, twenty
beeves and one hundred sheep. Through the flat country here flows the
Lycus river, as it is called, about two hundred feet in breadth.</p>
<p>(1) I have left this passage in the text, although it involves, at<br/>
first sight, a topographical error on the part of whoever wrote<br/>
it, and Hug and other commentators regard it as spurious. Jason's<br/>
beach (the modern Yasoun Bouroun) and the three first-named rivers<br/>
lie between Cotyora and Sinope. Possibly the author, or one of his<br/>
editors, somewhat loosely inserted a recapitulatory note<br/>
concerning the scenery of this coasting voyage at this point. "By<br/>
the way, I ought to have told you that as they coasted along,"<br/>
etc.<br/>
<br/>
(2) One of the most powerful of commercial cities, distinguished as<br/>
Pontica (whence, in the middle ages, Penteraklia), now Eregli. It<br/>
was one of the older Greek settlements, and, like Kalchedon (to<br/>
give that town its proper name), a Megaro-Doric colony. See<br/>
Kiepert, op. cit. chap. iv. 62.<br/>
<br/>
(3) According to another version of the legend Heracles went down to<br/>
bring up Cerberus, not here, but at Taenarum.<br/></p>
<p>The soldiers held a meeting, and took counsel about the remainder of the
journey: should they make their exit from the Pontus by sea or by land?
and Lycon the Achaean got up and said: "I am astonished, sirs, that the
generals do not endeavour to provide us more efficiently with provisions.
These gifts of hospitality will not afford three days' victuals for the
army; nor do I see from what region we are to provide ourselves as we
march. My proposal, therefore, is to demand of the Heracleots at least
three thousand cyzicenes." Another speaker suggested, "not less than ten
thousand. Let us at once, before we break up this meeting, send
ambassadors to the city and ascertain their answer to the demand and take
counsel accordingly." Thereupon they proceeded to put up as ambassadors,
first and foremost Cheirisophus, as he had been chosen general-in-chief;
others also named Xenophon.</p>
<p>But both Cheirisophus and Xenophon stoutly declined, maintaining both
alike that they could not compel a Hellenic city, actually friendly, to
give anything which they did not spontaneously offer. So, since these two
appeared to be backward, the soldiers sent Lycon the Achaean, Callimachus
the Parrhasian, and Agasias the Stymphalian. These three went and
announced the resolutions passed by the army. Lycon, it was said, even
went so far as to threaten certain consequences in case they refused to
comply. The Heracleots said they would deliberate; and, without more ado,
they got together their goods and chattels from their farms and fields
outside, and dismantled the market outside and transferred it within,
after which the gates were closed, and arms appeared at the battlements of
the walls.</p>
<p>At that check, the authors of these tumultuary measures fell to accusing
the generals, as if they had marred the proceeding; and the Arcadians and
Archaeans banded together, chiefly under the auspices of the two
ringleaders, Callimachus the Parrhasian and Lycon the Achaean. The
language they held was to this effect: It was outrageous that a single
Athenian and a Lacedaemonian, who had not contributed a soldier to the
expedition, should rule Peloponnesians; scandalous that they themselves
should bear the toils whilst others pocketed the spoils, and that too
though the preservation of the army was due to themselves; for, as every
one must admit, to the Arcadians and Achaeans the credit of that
achievement was due, and the rest of the army went for nothing (which was
indeed so far true that the Arcadians and Achaeans did form numerically
the larger half of the whole army). What then did common sense suggest?
Why, that they, the Arcadians and Achaeans, should make common cause,
choose generals for themselves independently, continue the march, and try
somewhat to better their condition. This proposal was carried. All the
Arcadians and Achaeans who chanced to be with Cheirisophus left him and
Xenophon, setting up for themselves and choosing ten generals of their
own. These ten, it was decreed, were to put into effect such measures as
approved themselves to the majority. Thus the absolute authority vested in
Cheirisophus was terminated there and then, within less than a week of his
appointment.</p>
<p>Xenophon, however was minded to prosecute the journey in their company,
thinking that this would be a safer plan than for each to start on his own
account. But Neon threw in his weight in favour of separate action. "Every
one for himself," he said, for he had heard from Cheirisophus that
Cleander, the Spartan governor-general at Byzantium, talked of coming to
Calpe Haven with some war vessels. Neon's advice was due to his desire to
secure a passage home in these war vessels for themselves and their
soldiers, without allowing any one else to share in their good-fortune. As
for Cheirisophus, he was at once so out of heart at the turn things had
taken, and soured with the whole army, that he left it to his subordinate,
Neon, to do just what he liked. Xenophon, on his side, would still have
been glad to be quit of the expedition and sail home; but on offering
sacrifice to Heracles the Leader, and seeking advice, whether it were
better and more desirable to continue the march in charge of the soldiers
who had remained faithful, or to take his departure, the god indicated to
him by the victims that he should adopt the former course.</p>
<p>In this way the army was now split up into three divisions (4). First, the
Arcadians and Achaeans, over four thousand five hundred men, all heavy
infantry. Secondly, Cheirisophus and his men, viz. one thousand four
hundred heavy infantry and the seven hundred peltasts, or Clearchus's
Thracians. Thirdly, Xenophon's division of one thousand seven hundred
heavy infantry, and three hundred peltasts; but then he alone had the
cavalry—about forty troopers.</p>
<p>(4) The total now amounted to 8640 and over.<br/></p>
<p>The Arcadians, who had bargained with the Heracleots and got some vessels
from them, were the first to set sail; they hoped, by pouncing suddenly on
the Bithynians, to make as large a haul as possible. With that object they
disembarked at Calpe Haven (5), pretty nearly at the middle point in
Thrace. Cheirisophus setting off straight from Heraclea, commenced a land
march through the country; but having entered into Thrace, he preferred to
cling to the seaboard, health and strength failing him. Xenophon, lastly,
took vessels, and disembarking on the confines of Thrace and the
Heracleotid, pushed forward through the heart of the country (6).</p>
<p>(5) The Haven of Calpe = Kirpe Liman or Karpe in the modern maps. The<br/>
name is interesting as being also the ancient name of the rock<br/>
fortress of Gibraltar.<br/>
<br/>
(6) Some MSS. here read, "In the prior chapter will be found a<br/>
description of the manner in which the absolute command of<br/>
Cheirisophus was abruptly terminated and the army of the Hellenes<br/>
broken up. The sequel will show how each of these divisions<br/>
fared." The passage is probably one of those commentators' notes,<br/>
with which we are now familiar.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0048" id="link2H_4_0048"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>The Arcadians, disembarking under cover of night at Calpe Haven, marched
against the nearest villages about thirty furlongs from the sea; and as
soon as it was light, each of the ten generals led his company to attack
one village, or if the village were large, a couple of companies advanced
under their combined generals. They further agreed upon a certain knoll,
where they were all eventually to assemble. So sudden was their attack
that they seized a number of captives and enclosed a multitude of small
cattle. But the Thracians who escaped began to collect again; for being
light-armed troops they had slipped in large numbers through the hands of
the heavy infantry; and now that they were got together they first
attacked the company of the Arcadian general, Smicres, who had done his
work and was retiring to the appointed meeting-place, driving along a
large train of captives and cattle. For a good while the Hellenes
maintained a running fight (1); but at the passage of a gorge the enemy
routed them, slaying Smicres himself and those with him to a man. The fate
of another company under command of Hegesander, another of the ten, was
nearly as bad; only eight men escaped, Hegesander being one of them. The
remaining captains eventually met, some with somewhat to show for their
pains, others empty-handed.</p>
<p>(1) Lit. "marched and fought," as did the forlorn hope under Sir C.<br/>
Wilson making its way from Abu Klea to the Nile in Jan. 1885.<br/></p>
<p>The Thracians, having achieved this success, kept up a continual shouting
and clatter of conversation to one another during the night; but with
day-dawn they marshalled themselves right round the knoll on which the
Hellenes were encamped—both cavalry in large numbers and light-armed
troops—while every minute the stream of new-comers grew greater.
Then they commenced an attack on the heavy infantry in all security, for
the Hellenes had not a single bowman, javelin-man, or mounted trooper
amongst them; while the enemy rushed forward on foot or galloped up on
horseback and let fly their javelins. It was vain to attempt to retaliate,
so lightly did they spring back and escape; and ever the attack renewed
itself from every point, so that on one side man after man was wounded, on
the other not a soul was touched; the result being that they could not
stir from their position, and the Thracians ended by cutting them off even
from their water. In their despair they began to parley about a truce, and
finally various concessions were made and terms agreed to between them;
but the Thracians would not hear of giving hostages in answer to the
demand of the Hellenes; at that point the matter rested. So fared it with
the Arcadians.</p>
<p>As to Cheirisophus, that general prosecuted his march along the seaboard,
and without check reached Calpe Haven. Xenophon advanced through the heart
of the country; and his cavalry pushing on in front, came upon some old
men pursuing their road somewither, who were brought to him, and in answer
to his question, whether they had caught sight of another Hellenic army
anywhere, told him all that had already taken place, adding that at
present they were being besieged upon a knoll with all the Thracians in
close circle round them. Thereupon he kept the old men under strict guard
to serve as guides in case of need; next, having appointed outposts, he
called a meeting of the soldiers, and addressed them: "Soldiers, some of
the Arcadians are dead and the rest are being besieged upon a certain
knoll. Now my own belief is, that if they are to perish, with their deaths
the seal is set to our own fate: since we must reckon with an enemy at
once numerous and emboldened. Clearly our best course is to hasten to
their rescue, if haply we may find them still alive, and do battle by
their side rather than suffer isolation, confronting danger single-handed.</p>
<p>"Let us then at once push forward as far as may seem opportune till
supper-time, and then encamp. As long as we are marching, let Timasion,
with the cavalry, gallop on in front, but without losing sight of us; and
let him examine all closely in front, so that nothing may escape our
observation." (At the same time too, he sent out some nimble fellows of
the light-armed troops to the flanks and to the high tops, who were to
give a signal if they espied anything anywhere; ordering them to burn
everything inflammable which lay in their path.) "As for ourselves," he
continued, "we need not look to find cover in any direction; for it is a
long step back to Heraclea and a long leap across to Chrysopolis, and the
enemy is at the door. The shortest road is to Calpe Haven, where we
suppose Cheirisophus, if safe, to be; but then, when we get there, at
Calpe Haven there are no vessels for us to sail away in; and if we stop
here, we have not provisions for a single day. Suppose the beleaguered
Arcadians left to their fate, we shall find it but a sorry alternative to
run the gauntlet with Cheirisophus's detachment alone; better to save them
if we can, and with united forces work out our deliverance in common. But
if so, we must set out with minds prepared, since to-day either a glorious
death awaits us or the achievement of a deed of noblest emprise in the
rescue of so many Hellene lives. Maybe it is God who leads us thus, God
who chooses to humble the proud boaster, boasting as though he were
exceedingly wise, but for us, the beginning of whose every act is by
heaven's grace, that same God reserves a higher grade of honour. One duty
I would recall to you, to apply your minds to the execution of the orders
with promptitude."</p>
<p>With these words he led the way. The cavalry, scattering as far in advance
as was prudent, wherever they set foot, set fire. The peltasts moving
parallel on the high ground were similarly employed, burning everything
combustible they could discover. While the main army, wherever they came
upon anything which had accidentally escaped, completed the work, so that
the whole country looked as if it were ablaze; and the army might easily
pass for a larger one. When the hour had come, they turned aside to a
knoll and took up quarters; and there they espied the enemy's watch-fires.
He was about forty furlongs distant. On their side also they kindled as
many watch-fires as possible; but as soon as they had dined the order was
passed to quench all the fires. So during the night they posted guards and
slept. But at daybreak they offered prayers to the gods, and drawing up in
order of battle, began marching with what speed they might. Timasion and
the cavalry, who had the guides with them, and were moving on briskly in
front, found themselves without knowing it at the very knoll upon which
the Hellenes had been beleaguered. But no army could they discover,
whether of friend or foe; only some starveling old women and men, with a
few sheep and oxen which had been left behind. This news they reported to
Xenophon and the main body. At first the marvel was what had happened; but
ere long they found out by inquiries from the folk who had been left
behind, that the Thracians had set off immediately after sundown, and were
gone; the Hellenes had waited till morning before they made off, but in
what direction, they could not say.</p>
<p>On hearing this, Xenophon's troops first breakfasted, and then getting
their kit together began their march, desiring to unite with the rest at
Calpe's Haven without loss of time. As they continued their march, they
came across the track of the Arcadians and Achaeans along the road to
Calpe, and both divisions arriving eventually at the same place, were
overjoyed to see one another again, and they embraced each other like
brothers. Then the Arcadians inquired of Xenophon's officers—why
they had quenched the watch-fires?"At first," said they, "when we lost
sight of your watch-fires, we expected you to attack the enemy in the
night; and the enemy, so at least we imagined, must have been afraid of
that and so set off. The time at any rate at which they set off would
correspond. But when the requisite time had elapsed and you did not come,
we concluded that you must have learnt what was happening to us, and in
terror had made a bolt for it to the seaboard. We resolved not to be left
behind by you; and that is how we also came to march hither."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0049" id="link2H_4_0049"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>During this day they contented themselves with bivouacking there on the
beach at the harbour. The place which goes by the name of Calpe Haven is
in Asiatic Thrace, the name given to a region extending from the mouth of
the Euxine all the way to Heraclea, which lies on the right hand as you
sail into the Euxine. It is a long day's voyage for a war-ship, using her
three banks of oars, from Byzantium to Heraclea, and between these two
there is not a single Hellenic or friendly city, but only these Bithynian
Thracians, who have a bad reputation for the savagery with which they
treat any Hellenes cast ashore by shipwreck or otherwise thrown into their
power.</p>
<p>Now the haven of Calpe lies exactly midway, halving the voyage between
Byzantium and Heraclea. It is a long promontory running out into the sea;
the seaward portion being a rocky precipice, at no point less than twenty
fathoms high; but on the landward side there is a neck about four hundred
feet wide; and the space inside the neck is capable of accommodating ten
thousand inhabitants, and there is a haven immediately under the crag with
a beach facing the west. Then there is a copious spring of fresh water
flowing on the very marge of the sea commanded by the stronghold. Again,
there is plenty of wood of various sorts; but most plentiful of all, fine
shipbuilding timber down to the very edge of the sea. The upland stretches
into the heart of the country for twenty furlongs at least. It is good
loamy soil, free from stones. For a still greater distance the seaboard is
thickly grown with large timber trees of every description. The
surrounding country is beautiful and spacious, containing numerous well
populated villages. The soil produces barley and wheat, and pulse of all
sorts, millet and sesame, figs in ample supply, with numerous vines
producing sweet wines, and indeed everything else except olives. Such is
the character of the country.</p>
<p>The tents were pitched on the seaward-facing beach, the soldiers being
altogether averse to camping on ground which might so easily be converted
into a city. Indeed, their arrival at the place at all seemed very like
the crafty design of some persons who were minded to form a city. The
aversion was not unnatural, since the majority of the soldiers had not
left their homes on so long a voyage from scantiness or subsistence, but
attracted by the fame of Cyrus's virtues; some of them bringing followers,
while others had expended money on the expedition. And amongst them was a
third set who had run away from fathers and mothers; while a different
class had left children behind, hoping to return to them with money or
other gains. Other people with Cyrus won great success, they were told
(1); why should it not be so with them? Being persons then of this
description, the one longing of their hearts was to reach Hellas safely.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. "his society was itself a passport to good fortune."<br/></p>
<p>It was on the day after their meeting that Xenophon sacrificed as a
preliminary to a military expedition; for it was needful to march out in
search of provisions, besides which he designed burying the dead. As soon
as the victims proved favourable they all setout, the Arcadians following
with the rest. The majority of the dead, who had lain already five days,
they buried just where they had fallen, in groups; to remove their bodies
now would have been impossible. Some few, who lay off the roads, they got
together and buried with what splendour they could, considering the means
in their power. Others they could not find, and for these they erected a
great cenotaph (2), and covered it with wreaths. When it was all done,
they returned home to camp. At that time they supped, and went to rest.</p>
<p>(2) "Cenotaph", i.e. "an empty tomb." The word is interesting as<br/>
occurring only in Xenophon, until we come to the writers of the<br/>
common dialect. Compare "hyuscyamus," hogbean, our henbane, which<br/>
we also owe to Xenophon. "Oecon." i. 13, see Sauppe, "Lexil. Xen."<br/>
s.vv.<br/></p>
<p>Next day there was a general meeting of the soldiers, collected chiefly by
Agasias the Stymphalian, a captain, and Hieronymus, an Eleian, also a
captain, and other seniors of the Arcadians; and they passed a resolution
that, for the future, whoever revived the idea of breaking up the army
should be punished by death. And the army, it was decided, would now
resume its old position under the command of its former generals. Though
Cheirisophus, indeed, had already died under medical treatment for fever
(3); and Neon the Asinaean had taken his place.</p>
<p>(3) This I take to be the meaning of the words, which are necessarily<br/>
ambiguous, since {pharmakon}, "a drug," also means "poison." Did<br/>
Cheirisophus conceivably die of fever brought on by some poisonous<br/>
draught? or did he take poison whilst suffering from fever? or did<br/>
he die under treatment?<br/></p>
<p>After these resolutions Xenophon got up and said: "Soldiers, the journey
must now, I presume, be conducted on foot; indeed, this is clear, since we
have no vessels; and we are driven to commence it at once, for we have no
provisions if we stop. We then," he continued, "will sacrifice, and you
must prepare yourselves to fight now, if ever, for the spirit of the enemy
has revived."</p>
<p>Thereupon the generals sacrificed, in the presence of the Arcadian seer,
Arexion; for Silanus the Ambraciot had chartered a vessel at Heraclea and
made his escape ere this. Sacrificing with a view to departure, the
victims proved unfavourable to them. Accordingly they waited that day.
Certain people were bold enough to say that Xenophon, out of his desire to
colonise the place, had persuaded the seer to say that the victims were
unfavourable to departure. Consequently he proclaimed by herald next
morning that any one who liked should be present at the sacrifice; or if
he were a seer he was bidden to be present and help to inspect the
victims. Then he sacrificed, and there were numbers present; but though
the sacrifice on the question of departure was repeated as many as three
times, the victims were persistently unfavourable. Thereat the soldiers
were in high dudgeon, for the provisions they had brought with them had
reached the lowest ebb, and there was no market to be had.</p>
<p>Consequently there was another meeting, and Xenophon spoke again: "Men,"
said he, "the victims are, as you may see for yourselves, not yet
favourable to the march; but meanwhile, I can see for myself that you are
in need of provisions; accordingly we must narrow the sacrifice to the
particular point." Some one got up and said: "Naturally enough the victims
are unfavourable, for, as I learnt from some one on a vessel which arrived
here yesterday by accident, Cleander, the governor at Byzantium, intends
coming here with ships and men-of-war." Thereat they were all in favour of
stopping; but they must needs go out for provisions, and with this object
he again sacrificed three times, and the victims remained adverse. Things
had now reached such a pass that the men actually came to Xenophon's tent
to proclaim that they had no provisions. His sole answer was that he would
not lead them out till the victims were favourable.</p>
<p>So again the next day he sacrificed; and nearly the whole army, so strong
was the general anxiety, flocked round the victims; and now the very
victims themselves failed. So the generals, instead of leading out the
army, called the men together. Xenophon, as was incumbent on him, spoke:
"It is quite possible that the enemy are collected in a body, and we shall
have to fight. If we were to leave our baggage in the strong place"
(pointing overhead) "and sally forth prepared for battle, the victims
might favour us." But the soldiers, on hearing this proposal, cried out,
"No need to take us inside that place; better sacrifice with all speed."
Now sheep there were none any longer. So they purchased oxen from under a
wagon and sacrificed; and Xenophon begged Cleanor the Arcadian to
superintend the sacrifice on his behalf, in case there might be some
change now. But even so there was no improvement.</p>
<p>Now Neon was general in place of Cheirisophus, and seeing the men
suffering so cruelly from want, he was willing to do them a good turn. So
he got hold of some Heracleot or other who said he knew of villages close
by from which they could get provisions, and proclaimed by herald: "If any
one liked to come out and get provisions, be it known that he, Neon, would
be their leader." So out came the men with spears, and wine skins and
sacks and other vessels—two thousand strong in all. But when they
had reached the villages and began to scatter for the purpose of foraging,
Pharnabazus's cavalry were the first to fall upon them. They had come to
the aid of the Bithynians, wishing, if possible, in conjunction with the
latter, to hinder the Hellenes from entering Phrygia. These troopers
killed no less than five hundred of the men; the rest fled for the lives
up into the hill country.</p>
<p>News of the catastrophe was presently brought into camp by one of those
who had escaped, and Xenophon, seeing that the victims had not been
favourable on that day, took a wagon bullock, in the absence of other
sacrificial beasts, offered it up, and started for the rescue, he and the
rest under thirty years of age to the last man. Thus they picked up the
remnant of Neon's party and returned to camp. It was now about sunset; and
the Hellenes in deep despondency were making their evening meal, when all
of a sudden, through bush and brake, a party of Bithynians fell upon the
pickets, cutting down some and chasing the rest into camp. In the midst of
screams and shouts the Hellenes ran to their arms, one and all; yet to
pursue or move the camp in the night seemed hardly safe, for the ground
was thickly grown with bush; all they could do was to strengthen the
outposts and keep watch under arms the livelong night.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0050" id="link2H_4_0050"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>And so they spent the night, but with day-dawn the generals led the way
into the natural fastness, and the others picked up their arms and baggage
and followed the lead. Before the breakfast-hour arrived, they had fenced
off with a ditch the only side on which lay ingress into the place, and
had palisaded off the whole, leaving only three gates. Anon a ship from
Heraclea arrived bringing barleymeal, victim animals, and wine.</p>
<p>Xenophon was up betimes, and made the usual offering before starting on an
expedition, and at the first victim the sacrifice was favourable. Just as
the sacrifice ended, the seer, Arexion the Parrhasian, caught sight of an
eagle, which boded well, and bade Xenophon lead on. So they crossed the
trench and grounded arms. Then proclamation was made by herald for the
soldiers to breakfast and start on an expedition under arms; the mob of
sutlers and the captured slaves would be left in camp. Accordingly the
mass of the troops set out. Neon alone remained; for it seemed best to
leave that general and his men to guard the contents of the camp. But when
the officers and soldiers had left them in the lurch, they were so ashamed
to stop in camp while the rest marched out, that they too set out, leaving
only those above five-and-forty years of age.</p>
<p>These then stayed, while the rest set out on the march. Before they had
gone two miles, they stumbled upon dead bodies, and when they had brought
up the rear of the column in a line with the first bodies to be seen, they
began digging graves and burying all included in the column from end to
end. After burying the first batch, they advanced, and again bringing the
rear even with the first unburied bodies which appeared, they buried in
the same way all which the line of troops included. Finally, reaching the
road that led out of the villages where the bodies lay thick together,
they collected them and laid them in a common grave.</p>
<p>It was now about midday, when pushing forward the troops up to the
villages without entering them, they proceeded to seize provisions, laying
hands on everything they could set eyes on under cover of their lines;
when suddenly they caught sight of the enemy cresting certain hillocks in
front of them, duly marshalled in line—a large body of cavalry and
infantry. It was Spithridates and Rhathines, sent by Pharnabazus with
their force at their backs. As soon as the enemy caught sight of the
Hellenes, they stood still, about two miles distant. Then Arexion the seer
sacrificed, and at the first essay the victims were favourable. Whereupon
Xenophon addressed the other generals: "I would advise, sirs, that we
should detach one or more flying columns to support our main attack, so
that in case of need at any point we may have reserves in readiness to
assist our main body, and the enemy, in the confusion of battle, may find
himself attacking the unbroken lines of troops not hitherto engaged."
These views approved themselves to all. "Do you then," said he, "lead on
the vanguard straight at the enemy. Do not let us stand parleying here,
now that we have caught sight of him and he of us. I will detach the
hindmost companies in the way we have decided upon and follow you." After
that they quietly advanced, and he, withdrawing the rear-rank companies in
three brigades consisting of a couple of hundred men apiece, commissioned
the first on the right to follow the main body at the distance of a
hundred feet. Samolas the Achaean was in command of this brigade. The duty
of the second, under the command of Pyrrhias the Arcadian, was to follow
in the centre. The last was posted on the left, with Phrasias, an
Athenian, in command. As they advanced, the vanguard reached a large and
difficult woody glen, and halted, not knowing whether the obstacle needed
to be crossed or not. They passed down the word for the generals and
officers to come forward to the front. Xenophon, wondering what it was
that stopped the march, and presently hearing the above order passed along
the ranks, rode up with all speed. As soon as they were met, Sophaenetus,
as the eldest general, stated his opinion that the question, whether a
gully of that kind ought to be crossed or not, was not worth discussing.
Xenophon, with some ardour, retorted: "You know, sirs, I have not been in
the habit hitherto of introducing you to danger which you might avoid. It
is not your reputation for courage surely that is at stake, but your safe
return home. But now the matter stands thus: It is impossible to retire
from this point without a battle; if we do not advance against the enemy
ourselves, he will follow us as soon as we have turned our backs and
attack us. Consider, then; is it better to go and meet the foe with arms
advanced, or with arms reversed to watch him as he assails us on our rear?
You know this at any rate, that to retire before an enemy has nothing
glorious about it, whereas attack engenders courage even in a coward. For
my part, I would rather at any time attack with half my men than retreat
with twice the number. As to these fellows, if we attack them, I am sure
you do not really expect them to await us; though, if we retreat, we know
for certain they will be emboldened to pursue us. Nay, if the result of
crossing is to place a difficult gully behind us when we are on the point
of engaging, surely that is an advantage worth seizing. At least, if it
were left to me, I would choose that everything should appear smooth and
passable to the enemy, which may invite retreat; but for ourselves we may
bless the ground which teaches us that except in victory we have no
deliverance. It astonishes me that any one should deem this particular
gully a whit more terrible than any of the other barriers which we have
successfully passed. How impassable was the plain, had we failed to
conquer their cavalry! how insurmountable the mountains already traversed
by us, with all their peltasts in hot pursuit at our heels! Nay, when we
have safely reached the sea, the Pontus will present a somewhat formidable
gully, when we have neither vessels to convey us away nor corn to keep us
alive whilst we stop. But we shall no sooner be there than we must be off
again to get provisions. Surely it is better to fight to-day after a good
breakfast than to-morrow on an empty stomach. Sirs, the offerings are
favourable to us, the omens are propitious, the victims more than
promising; let us attack the enemy! Now that they have had a good look at
us, these fellows must not be allowed to enjoy their dinners or choose a
camp at their own sweet will."</p>
<p>After that the officers bade him lead on. None gainsaid, and he led the
way. His orders were to cross the gully, where each man chanced to find
himself. By this method, as it seemed to him, the troops would more
quickly mass themselves on the far side than was possible, if they defiled
along (1) the bridge which spanned the gully. But once across he passed
along the line and addressed the troops: "Sirs, call to mind what by help
of the gods you have already done. Bethink you of the battles you have won
at close quarters with the foe; of the fate which awaits those who flee
before their foes. Forget not that we stand at the very doors of Hellas.
Follow in the steps of Heracles, our guide, and cheer each the other
onwards by name. Sweet were it surely by some brave and noble word or
deed, spoken or done this day, to leave the memory of oneself in the
hearts of those one loves."</p>
<p>(1) Lit. "had they wound off thread by thread"; the metaphor is from<br/>
unwinding a ball of wool.<br/></p>
<p>These words were spoken as he rode past, and simultaneously he began
leading on the troops in battle line; and, placing the peltasts on either
flank of the main body, they moved against the enemy. Along the line the
order had sped "to keep their spears at rest on the right shoulder until
the bugle signal; then lower them for the charge, slow march, and even
pace, no one to quicken into a run." Lastly, the watchword was passed,
"Zeus the Saviour, Heracles our Guide." The enemy waited their approach,
confident in the excellence of his position; but as they drew closer the
Hellene light troops, with a loud alala! without waiting for the order,
dashed against the foe. The latter, on their side, came forward eagerly to
meet the charge, both the cavalry and the mass of the Bithynians; and
these turned the peltasts. But when with counter-wave the phalanx of the
heavy infantry rapidly advancing, faced them, and at the same time the
bugle sounded, and the battle hymn rose from all lips, and after this a
loud cheer rose, and at the same instant they couched their spears;—at
this conjuncture the enemy no longer welcomed them, but fled. Timasion
with his cavalry followed close, and, considering their scant numbers,
they did great execution. It was the left wing of the enemy, in a line
with which the Hellene cavalry were posted, that was so speedily
scattered. But the right, which was not so hotly pursued, collected upon a
knoll; and when the Hellenes saw them standing firm, it seemed the easiest
and least dangerous course to go against them at once. Raising the battle
hymn, they straightway fell upon them, but the others did not await their
coming. Thereupon the peltasts gave chase until the right of the enemy was
in its turn scattered, though with slight loss in killed; for the enemy's
cavalry was numerous and threatening.</p>
<p>But when the Hellenes saw the cavalry of Pharnabazus still standing in
compact order, and the Bithynian horsemen massing together as if to join
it, and like spectators gazing down from a knoll at the occurrences below;
though weary, they determined to attack the enemy as best they could, and
not suffer him to recover breath with reviving courage. So they formed in
compact line and advanced. Thereupon the hostile cavalry turned and fled
down the steep as swiftly as if they had been pursued by cavalry. In fact
they sought the shelter of a gully, the existence of which was unknown to
the Hellenes. The latter accordingly turned aside too soon and gave up the
chase, for it was too late. Returning to the point where the first
encounter took place they erected a trophy, and went back to the sea about
sunset. It was something like seven miles to camp.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0051" id="link2H_4_0051"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>After this the enemy confined themselves to their own concerns, and
removed their households and property as far away as possible. The
Hellenes, on their side, were still awaiting the arrival of Cleander with
the ships of war and transports, which ought to be there soon. So each day
they went out with the baggage animals and slaves and fearlessly brought
in wheat and barley, wine and vegetables, millet and figs; since the
district produced all good things, the olive alone excepted. When the army
stayed in camp to rest, pillaging parties were allowed to go out, and
those who went out appropriated the spoils; but when the whole army went
out, if any one went off apart and seized anything, it was voted to be
public property. Ere long there was an ample abundance of supplies of all
sorts, for marketables arrived from Hellenic cities on all sides, and
marts were established. Mariners coasting by, and hearing that a city was
being founded and that there was a harbour, were glad to put in. Even the
hostile tribes dwelling in the neighbourhood presently began to send
envoys to Xenophon. It was he who was forming the place into a city, as
they understood, and they would be glad to learn on what terms they might
secure his friendship. He made a point of introducing these visitors to
the soldiers.</p>
<p>Meanwhile Cleander arrived with two ships of war, but not a single
transport. At the moment of his arrival, as it happened, the army had
taken the field, and a separate party had gone off on a pillaging
expedition into the hills and had captured a number of small cattle. In
thir apprehension of being deprived of them, these same people spoke to
Dexippus (this was the same man who had made off from Trapezus with the
fifty-oared galley), and urged him to save their sheep for them. "Take
some for yourself," said they, "and give the rest back to us." So, without
more ado, he drove off the soldiers standing near, who kept repeating that
the spoil was public property. Then off he went to Cleander. "Here is an
attempt," said he, "at robbery." Cleander bade him to bring up the culprit
to him. Dexippus seized on some one, and was for haling him to the Spartan
governor. Just then Agasias came across him and rescued the man, who was a
member of his company; and the rest of the soldiers present set to work to
stone Dexippus, calling him "traitor." Things looked so ill that a number
of the crew of the ships of war took fright and fled to the sea, and with
the rest Cleander himself. Xenophon and the other generals tried to hold
the men back, assuring Cleander that the affair signified nothing at all,
and that the origin of it was a decree pased by the army. That was to
blame, if anything. But Cleander, goaded by Dexippus, and personally
annoyed at the fright which he had experienced, threatened to sail away
and publish an interdict against them, forbidding any city to receive
them, as being public enemies. For at this date the Lacedaemonians held
sway over the whole Hellenic world.</p>
<p>Thereat the affair began to wear an ugly look, and the Hellenes begged and
implored Cleander to reconsider his intention. He replied that he would be
as good as his word, and that nothing should stop him, unless the man who
set the example of stoning, with the other who rescued the prisoner, were
given up to him. Now, one of the two whose persons were thus demanded—Agasias—had
been a friend to Xenophon throughout; and that was just why Dexippus was
all the more anxious to accuse him. In their perplexity the generals
summoned a full meeting of the soldiers, and some speakers were disposed
to make very light of Cleander and set him at naught. But Xenophon took a
more serious view of the matter; he rose and addressed the meeting thus:
"Soldiers, I cannot say that I feel disposed to make light of this
business, if Cleander be allowed to go away, as he threatens to do, in his
present temper towards us. There are Hellenic cities close by; but then
the Lacedaemonians are the lords of Hellas, and they can, any one of them,
carry out whatever they like in the cities. If then the first thing this
Lacedaemonian does is to close the gates of Byzantium, and next to pass an
order to the other governors, city by city, not to receive us because we
are a set of lawless ruffians disloyal to the Lacedaemonians; and if,
further, this report of us should reach the ears of their admiral,
Anaxibius, to stay or to sail away will alike be difficult. Remember, the
Lacedaemonians at the present time are lords alike on land and on sea. For
the sake then of a single man, or for two men's sake, it is not right that
the rest of us should be debarred from Hellas; but whatever they enjoin we
must obey. Do not the cities which gave us birth yield them obedience
also? For my own part, inasmuch as Dexippus, I believe, keeps telling
Cleander that Agasias would never have done this had not I, Xenophon,
bidden him, I absolve you of all complicity, and Agasias too, if Agasias
himself states that I am in any way a prime mover in this matter. If I
have set the fashion of stone-throwing or any other sort of violence I
condemn myself—I say that I deserve the extreme penalty, and I will
submit to undergo it. I further say that if any one else is accused, that
man is bound to surrender himself to Cleander for judgement, for by this
means you will be absolved entirely from the accusation. But as the matter
now stands, it is cruel that just when we were aspiring to win praise and
honour throughout Hellas, we are destined to sink below the level of the
rest of the world, banned from the Hellenic cities whose common name we
boast."</p>
<p>After him Agasias got up, and said, "I swear to you, sirs, by the gods and
goddesses, verily and indeed, neither Xenophon nor any one else among you
bade me rescue the man. I saw an honest man—one of my own company—being
taken up by Dexippus, the man who betrayed you, as you know full well.
That I could not endure; I rescued him, I admit the fact. Do not you
deliver me up. I will surrender myself, as Xenophon suggests, to Cleander
to pass what verdict on me he thinks right. Do not, for the sake of such a
matter, make foes of the Lacedaemonians; rather God grant that (1) each of
you may safely reach the goal of his desire. Only do you choose from among
yourselves and send with me to Cleander those who, in case of any omission
on my part, may by their words and acts supply what is lacking." Thereupon
the army granted him to choose for himself whom he would have go with him
and to go; and he at once chose the generals. After this they all set off
to Cleander—Agasias and the generals and the man who had been
rescued by Agasias—and the generals spoke as follows: "The army has
sent us to you, Cleander, and this is their bidding: 'If you have fault to
find with all, they say, you ought to pass sentence on all, and do with
them what seems best; or if the charge is against one man or two, or
possibly several, what they expect of these people is to surrender
themselves to you for judgement.' Accordingly, if you lay anything to the
charge of us generals, here we stand at your bar. Or do you impute the
fault to some one not here? tell us whom. Short of flying in the face of
our authority, there is no one who will absent himself."</p>
<p>(1) Reading with the best MSS., {sozoisthe}. Agasias ends his sentence<br/>
with a prayer. Al. {sozesthe}, "act so that each," etc.<br/></p>
<p>At this point Agasias stepped forward and said: "It was I, Cleander, who
rescued the man before you yonder from Dexippus, when the latter was
carrying him off, and it was I who gave the order to strike Dexippus. My
plea is that I know the prisoner to be an honest man. As to Dexippus, I
know that he was chosen by the army to command a fifty-oared galley, which
we had obtained by request from the men of Trapezus for the express
purpose of collecting vessels to carry us safely home. But this same
Dexippus betrayed his fellow-soldiers, with whom he had been delivered
from so many perils, and made off into hiding like a runaway slave,
whereby we have robbed the Trapezuntines of their frigate, and must needs
appear as knaves in their eyes for this man's sake. As to ourselves, as
far as he could, he has ruined us; for, like the rest of us, he had heard
how all but impossible it was for us to retreat by foot across the rivers
and to reach Hellas in safety. That is the stamp of man whom I robbed of
his prey. Now, had it been you yourself who carried him off, or one of
your emissaries, or indeed any one short of a runaway from ourselves, be
sure that I should have acted far otherwise. Be assured that if you put me
to death at this time you are sacrificing a good, honest man for the sake
of a coward and a scamp."</p>
<p>When he had listened to these remarks, Cleander replied that if such had
been the conduct of Dexippus, he could not congratulate him. "But still,"
he added, turning to the generals, "were Dexippus ever so great a scamp he
ought not to suffer violence; but in the language of your own demand he
was entitled to a fair trial, and so to obtain his deserts. What I have to
say at present therefore is: leave your friend here and go your way, and
when I give the order be present at the trial. I have no further charge
against the army or any one, since the prisoner himself admits that he
rescued the man." Then the man who had been rescued said: "In behalf of
myself, Cleander, if possibly you think that I was being taken up for some
misdeed, it is not so; I neither struck nor shot; I merely said, 'The
sheep are public property;' for it was a resolution of the soldiers that
whenever the army went out as a body any booty privately obtained was to
be public property. That was all I said, and thereupon yonder fellow
seized me and began dragging me off. He wanted to stop our mouths, so that
he might have a share of the things himself, and keep the rest for these
buccaneers, contrary to the ordinance." In answer to that Cleander said:
"Very well, if that is your disposition you can stay behind too, and we
will take your case into consideration also."</p>
<p>Thereupon Cleander and his party proceeded to breakfast; but Xenophon
collected the army in assembly, and advised their sending a deputation to
Cleander to intercede in behalf of the men. Accordingly it was resolved to
send some generals and officers with Dracontius the Spartan, and of the
rest those who seemed best fitted to go. The deputation was to request
Cleander by all means to release the two men. Accordingly Xenophon came
and addressed him thus: "Cleander, you have the men; the army has bowed to
you and assented to do what you wished with respect to these two members
of their body and themselves in general. But now they beg and pray you to
give up these two men, and not to put them to death. Many a good service
have these two wrought for our army in past days. Let them but obtain this
from you, and in return the army promises that, if you will put yourself
at their head and the gracious gods approve, they will show you how
orderly they are, how apt to obey their general, and, with heaven's help,
to face their foes unflinchingly. They make this further request to you,
that you will present yourself and take command of them and make trial of
them. 'Test us ourselves,' they say, 'and test Dexippus, what each of us
is like, and afterwards assign to each his due.'" When Cleander heard
these things, he answered: "Nay, by the twin gods, I will answer you
quickly enough. Here I make you a present of the two men, and I will as
you say present myself, and then, if the gods vouchsafe, I will put myself
at your head and lead you into Hellas. Very different is your language
from the tale I used to hear concerning you from certain people, that you
wanted to withdraw the army from allegiance to the Lacedaemonians."</p>
<p>After this the deputation thanked him and retired, taking with them the
two men; then Cleander sacrificed as a preliminary to marching and
consorted friendlily with Xenophon, and the two struck up an alliance.
When the Spartan saw with what good discipline the men carried out their
orders, he was still more anxious to become their leader. However, in
spite of sacrifices repeated on three successive days, the victims
steadily remained unfavourable. So he summoned the generals and said to
them: "The victims smile not on me, they suffer me not to lead you home;
but be not out of heart at that. To you it is given, as it would appear,
to bring your men safe home. Forwards then, and for our part, whenever you
come yonder, we will bestow on you as warm a welcome as we may."</p>
<p>Then the soldiers resolved to make him a present of the public cattle,
which he accepted, but again gave back to them. So he sailed away; but the
soldiers made division of the corn which they had collected and of the
other captured property, and commenced their homeward march through the
territory of the Bithynians.</p>
<p>At first they confined themselves to the main road; but not chancing upon
anything whereby they might reach a friendly territory with something in
their pockets for themselves, they resolved to turn sharp round, and
marched for one day and night in the opposite direction. By this
proceeding they captured many slaves and much small cattle; and on the
sixth day reached Chrysopolis in Chalcedonia (2). Here they halted seven
days while they disposed of their booty by sale.</p>
<p>(2) The name should be written "Calchedonia." The false form drove out<br/>
the more correct, probably through a mispronunciation, based on a<br/>
wrong derivation, at some date long ago. The sites of Chrysopolis<br/>
and Calchedon correspond respectively to the modern Scutari and<br/>
Kadikoi.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0052" id="link2H_4_0052"></SPAN></p>
<h2> BOOK VII </h2>
<p>(In the earlier portion of the narrative will be found a<br/>
detailed history of the fortunes of the Hellenes during their<br/>
march up country with Cyrus down to the date of the battle;<br/>
and, subsequently to his death, until they reached the Euxine;<br/>
as also of all their doings in their efforts to escape from<br/>
the Euxine, partly by land marches and partly under sail by<br/>
sea, until they found themselves outside the mouth of the<br/>
Black Sea (south of the Bosphorus) at Chrysopolis in Asia.)<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0053" id="link2H_4_0053"></SPAN></p>
<h2> I </h2>
<p>At this point Pharnabazus, who was afraid that the army might undertake a
campaign against his satrapy, sent to Anaxibius, the Spartan high admiral,
who chanced to be in Byzantium, and begged him to convey the army out of
Asia, undertaking to comply with his wishes in every respect. Anaxibius
accordingly sent to summon the generals and officers to Byzantium, and
promised that the soldiers should not lack pay for service, if they
crossed the strait. The officers said that they would deliberate and
return an answer. Xenophon individually informed them that he was about to
quit the army at once, and was only anxious to set sail. Anaxibius pressed
him not to be in so great a hurry: "Cross over with the rest," he said,
"and then it will be time enough to think about quitting the army." This
the other undertook to do.</p>
<p>Now Seuthes the Thracian sent Medosades and begged Xenophon to use his
influence to get the army across. "Tell Xenophon, if he will do his best
for me in this matter, he will not regret it." Xenophon answered: "The
army is in any case going to cross; so that, as far as that is concerned,
Seuthes is under no obligation to me or to any one else; but as soon as it
is once across, I personally shall be quit of it. Let Seuthes, therefore,
as far as he may deem consistent with prudence, apply to those who are
going to remain and will have a voice in affairs."</p>
<p>After this the whole body of troops crossed to Byzantium. But Anaxibius,
instead of proceeding to give pay, made proclamation that, "The soldiers
were to take up their arms and baggage and go forth," as if all he wished
were to ascertain their numbers and bid them god-speed at the same moment.
The soldiers were not well pleased at that, because they had no money to
furnish themselves with provisions for the march; and they sluggishly set
about getting their baggage together. Xenophon meanwhile, being on terms
of intimacy with the governor, Cleander, came to pay his host a final
visit, and bid him adieu, being on the point of setting sail. But the
other protested; "Do not do so, or else," said he, "you will be blamed,
for even now certain people are disposed to hold you to account because
the army is so slow in getting under weigh." The other answered, "Nay, I
am not to blame for that. It is the men themselves, who are in want of
provisions; that is why they are out of heart at their exodus." "All the
same," he replied, "I advise you to go out, as if you intended to march
with them, and when you are well outside, it will be time enough to take
yourself off." "Well then," said Xenophon, "we will go and arrange all
this with Anaxibius." They went and stated the case to the admiral, who
insisted that they must do as he had said, and march out, bag and baggage,
by the quickest road; and as an appendix to the former edict, he added,
"Any one absenting himself from the review and the muster will have
himself to blame for the consequences." This was peremptory. So out
marched, the generals first, and then the rest; and now, with the
exception of here a man and there, they were all outside; it was a "clean
sweep"; and Eteonicus stood posted near the gates, ready to close them, as
soon as the men were fairly out, and to thrust in the bolt pin.</p>
<p>Then Anaxibius summoned the generals and captains, and addressed them:
"Provisions you had better get from the Thracian villages; you will find
plenty of barley, wheat, and other necessaries in them; and when you have
got them, off with you to the Chersonese, where Cyniscus will take you
into his service." Some of the soldiers overheard what was said, or
possibly one of the officers was the medium of communication; however it
was, the news was handed on to the army. As to the generals, their
immediate concern was to try and gain some information as to Seuthes: "Was
he hostile or friendly? also, would they have to march through the Sacred
mountain (1), or round about through the middle of Thrace?"</p>
<p>(1) So the mountain-range is named which runs parallel to the<br/>
Propontis (Sea of Marmora) from lat. 41 degrees N. circa to lat.<br/>
40 degrees 30'; from Bisanthe (Rhodosto) to the neck of the<br/>
Chersonese (Gallipoli).<br/></p>
<p>While they were discussing these points, the soldiers snatched up their
arms and made a rush full speed at the gates, with the intention of
getting inside the fortification again. But Eteonicus and his men, seeing
the heavy infantry coming up at a run promptly closed the gates and thrust
in the bolt pin. Then the soldiers fell to battering the gates, exclaiming
that it was iniquitous to thrust them forth in this fashion into the jaws
of their enemies. "If you do not of your own accord open the gates," they
cried, "we will split them in half"; and another set rushed down to the
sea, and so along the break-water and over the wall into the city; while a
third set, consisting of those few who were still inside, having never
left the city, seeing the affair at the gates, severed the bars with axes
and flung the portals wide open; and the rest came pouring in.</p>
<p>Xenophon, seeing what was happening, was seized with alarm lest the army
betake itself to pillage, and ills incurable be wrought to the city, to
himself, and to the soldiers. Then he set off, and, plunging into the
throng, was swept through the gates with the crowd. The Byzantines no
sooner saw the soldiers forcibly rushing in than they left the open
square, and fled, some to the shipping, others to their homes, while those
already indoors came racing out, and some fell to dragging down their
ships of war, hoping possibly to be safe on board these; while there was
not a soul who doubted but that the city was taken, and that they were all
undone. Eteonicus made a swift retreat to the citadel. Anaxibius ran down
to the sea, and, getting on board a fisherman's smack, sailed round to the
acropolis, and at once sent off to fetch over the garrison troops from
Chalcedon, since those already in the acropolis seemed hardly sufficient
to keep the men in check.</p>
<p>The soldiers, catching sight of Xenophon, threw themselves upon him,
crying: "Now, Xenophon, is the time to prove yourself a man. You have got
a city, you have got triremes, you have got money, you have got men;
to-day, if you only chose, you can do us a good turn, and we will make you
a great man." He replied: "Nay, I like what you say, and I will do it all;
but if that is what you have set your hearts on, fall into rank and take
up position at once." This he said, wishing to quiet them, and so passed
the order along the lines himself, while bidding the rest to do the same:
"Take up position; stand easy." But the men themselves, by a species of
self-marshalling, fell into rank, and were soon formed, the heavy infantry
eight deep, while the light infantry had run up to cover either wing. The
Thracian Square, as it is called, is a fine site for manouvering, being
bare of buildings and level. As soon as the arms were stacked and the
men's tempers cooled, Xenophon called a general meeting of the soldiers,
and made the following speech:—</p>
<p>"Soldiers, I am not surprised at your wrath, or that you deem it monstrous
treatment so to be cheated; but consider what will be the consequences if
we gratify our indignation, and in return for such deception, avenge
ourselves on the Lacedaemonians here present, and plunder an innocent
city. We shall be declared enemies of the Lacedaemonians and their allies;
and what sort of war that will be, we need not go far to conjecture. I
take it, you have not forgotten some quite recent occurrences. We
Athenians entered into war against the Lacedaemonians and their allies
with a fleet consisting of not less than three hundred line-of-battle
ships, including those in dock as well as those afloat. We had vast
treasures stored up in the city, and a yearly income which, derived from
home or foreign sources, amounted to no less than a thousand talents. Our
empire included all the islands, and we were possessed of numerous cities
both in Asia and in Europe. Amongst others, this very Byzantium, where we
are now, was ours; and yet in the end we were vanquished, as you all very
well know.</p>
<p>"What, must we anticipate, will now be our fate? The Lacedaemonians have
not only their old allies, but the Athenians and those who were at that
time allies of Athens are added to them. Tissaphernes and all the rest of
the Asiatics on the seaboard are our foes, not to speak of our arch-enemy,
the king himself, up yonder, whom we came to deprive of his empire, and to
kill, if possible. I ask then, with all these banded together against us,
is there any one so insensate as to imagine that we can survive the
contest? For heaven's sake, let us not go mad or loosely throw away our
lives in war with our own native cities—nay, our own friends, our
kith and our kin; for in one or other of the cities they are all included.
Every city will march against us, and not unjustly, if, after refusing to
hold one single barbarian city by right of conquest, we seize the first
Hellenic city that we come to and make it a ruinous heap. For my part, my
prayer is that before I see such things wrought by you, I, at any rate,
may lie ten thousand fathoms under ground! My counsel to you, as Hellenes,
is to try and obtain your just rights, through obedience to those who
stand at the head of Hellas; and if so be that you fail in those demands,
why, being more sinned against than sinning, need we rob ourselves of
Hellas too? At present, I propose that we should send to Anaxibius and
tell him that we have made an entrance into the city, not meditating
violence, but merely to discover if he and his will show us any good; for
if so, it is well; but of otherwise, at least we will let him see that he
does not shut the door upon us as dupes and fools. We know the meaning of
discipline; we turn our backs and go."</p>
<p>This resolution was passed, and they sent Hieronymus an Eleian, with two
others, Eurylochus an Arcadian and Philesius an Achaean, to deliver the
message. So these set off on their errand. But while the soldiers were
still seated in conclave, Coeratadas, of Thebes, arrived. He was a Theban
not in exile, but with a taste for generalship, who made it his business
to see if any city or nation were in need of his services. Thus, on the
present occasion, he presented himself, and begged to state that he was
ready to put himself at their head, and lead them into the Delta of Thrace
(2), as it is called, where they would find themselves in a land of
plenty; but until they got there, he would provide them with meat and
drink enough and to spare. While they were still listening to this tale,
the return message from Anaxibius came. His answer was: "The discipline,
they had spoken of, was not a thing they would regret; indeed he would
report their behaviour to the authorities at home; and for himself, he
would take advice and do the best he could for them."</p>
<p>(2) The exact locality, so called, is not known; doubtless it lay<br/>
somewhere between Byzantium and Salmydessus, possibly at Declus<br/>
(mod. Derkos); or possibly the narrow portion of Thrace between<br/>
the Euxine, Bosphorus, and Propontis went by this name. See note<br/>
in Pretor ad. loc., and "Dict. Geog." "Thracia."<br/></p>
<p>Thereupon the soldiers accepted Coeratadas as their general, and retired
without the walls. Their new general undertook to present himself to the
troops next day with sacrificial beasts and a soothsayer, with eatables
also and drinkables for the army. Now, as soon as they were gone out,
Anaxibius closed the gates and issued a proclamation to the effect that
"any of the soldiers caught inside should be knocked down to the hammer
and sold at once." Next day, Coeratadas arrived with the victims and the
soothsayer. A string of twenty bearers bearing barleymeal followed at his
heels, succeeded by other twenty carrying wine, and three laden with a
supply of olives, and two others carrying, the one about as much garlic as
a single man could lift, and the other a similar load of onions. These
various supplies he set down, apparently for distribution, and began to
sacrifice.</p>
<p>Now Xenophon sent to Cleander, begging him to arrange matters so that he
might be allowed to enter the walls, with a view to starting from
Byzantium on his homeward voyage. Cleander came, and this is what he said:
"I have come; but I was barely able to arrange what you want. Anaxibius
insisted: 'It was not convenient that Xenophon should be inside while the
soldiers are close to the walls without; the Byzantines at sixes and
sevens moreover; and no love lost between the one party of them and the
other.' Still, he ended by bidding you to come inside, if you were really
minded to leave the town by sea with himself." Accordingly Xenophon bade
the soldiers good-bye, and returned with Cleander within the walls.</p>
<p>To return to Coeratadas. The first day he failed to get favourable signs
at the sacrifice, and never a dole of rations did he make to the soldiers.
On the second day the victims were standing ready near the altar, and so
was Coeratadas, with chaplet crowned, all ready to sacrifice, when up
comes Timasion the Dardanian, with Neon the Asinaean, and Cleanor of
Orchomenus, forbidding Coeratadas to sacrifice: "He must understand there
was an end to his generalship, unless he gave them provisions." The other
bade them measure out the supplies, "Pray, dole them out." But when he
found that he had a good deal short of a single day's provisions for each
man, he picked up his paraphernalia of sacrifice and withdrew. As to being
general, he would have nothing more to say to it.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0054" id="link2H_4_0054"></SPAN></p>
<h2> II </h2>
<p>Now these five were left—Neon the Asinaean, Phryniscus the Achaean,
Philesius the Achaean, Xanthicles the Achaean, Timasion the Dardanian—at
the head of the army, and they pushed on to some villages of the Thracians
facing Byzantium, and there encamped. Now the generals could not agree.
Cleanor and Phryniscus wished to march to join Seuthes, who had worked
upon their feelings by presenting one with a horse and the other with a
woman to wife. But Neon's object was to come to the Chersonese: "When we
are under the wing of the Lacedaemonians," he thought, "I shall step to
the front and command the whole army."</p>
<p>Timasion's one ambition was to cross back again into Asia, hoping to be
reinstated at home and end his exile. The soldiers shared the wishes of
the last general. But, as time dragged on, many of the men sold their arms
at different places and set sail as best they could; others (actually gave
away their arms, some here, some there, and (1)) became absorbed in the
cities. One man rejoiced. This was Anaxibius, to whom the break-up of the
army was a blessing. "That is the way," he said to himself, "I can best
gratify Pharnabazus."</p>
<p>(1) The MSS. give the words so rendered—{oi de kai (didontes ta opla<br/>
kata tous khorous)}, which some critics emend {diadidontes},<br/>
others bracket as suspected, others expunge.<br/></p>
<p>But Anaxibius, while prosecuting his voyage from Byzantium, was met at
Cyzicus by Aristarchus, the new governor, who was to succeed Cleander at
Byzantium; and report said that a new admiral, Polus, if he had not
actually arrived, would presently reach the Hellespont and relieve
Anaxibius. The latter sent a parting injunction to Aristarchus to be sure
and sell all the Cyreian soldiers he could lay hands on still lingering in
Byzantium; for Cleander had not sold a single man of them; on the
contrary, he had made it his business to tend the sick and wounded,
pitying them, and insisting on their being received in the houses.
Aristarchus changed all that, and was no sooner arrived in Byzantium than
he sold no less than four hundred of them. Meanwhile Anaxibius, on his
coasting voyage, reached Parium, and, according to the terms of their
agreement, he sent to Pharnabazus. But the latter, learning that
Aristarchus was the new governor at Byzantim, and that Anixibius had
ceased to be admiral, turned upon him a cold shoulder, and set out
concocting the same measures concerning the Cyreian army with Aristarchus,
as he had lately been at work upon with Anaxibius.</p>
<p>Anaxibius thereupon summoned Xenophon and bade him, by every manner of
means, sail to the army with the utmost speed, and keep it together. "He
was to collect the scattered fragments and march them down to Perinthus,
and thence convey them across to Asia without loss of time." And herewith
he put a thirty-oared galley at his service, and gave him a letter of
authority and an officer to accompany him, with an order to the
Perinthians "to escort Xenophon without delay on horseback to the army."
So it was that Xenophon sailed across and eventually reached the army. The
soldiers gave him a joyous welcome, and would have been only too glad to
cross from Thrace into Asia under his leadership.</p>
<p>But Seuthes, hearing that Xenophon had arrived, sent Medosades again, by
sea to meet him, and begged him to bring the army to him; and whatever he
thought would make his speech persuasive, he was ready to promise him. But
the other replied, that none of these things were open to him to do; and
with this answer Medosades departed, and the Hellenes proceeded to
Perinthus. Here on arrival Neon withdrew his troops and encamped apart,
having about eight hundred men; while the remainder of the army lay in one
place under the walls of Perinthus.</p>
<p>After this, Xenophon set himself to find vessels, so as to lose no time in
crossing. But in the interval Aristarchus, the governor from Byzantium,
arrived with a couple of war-ships, being moved to do so by Pharnabazus.
To make doubly sure, he first forbade the skippers and shipmasters to
carry the troops across, and then he visited the camp and informed the
soldiers that their passage into Asia was forbidden. Xenophon replied that
he was acting under the orders of Anaxibius, who had sent him thither for
this express purpose; to which Aristarchus retorted, "For the matter of
that, Anaxibius is no longer admiral, and I am governor in this quarter;
if I catch any of you at sea, I will sink you." With these remarks he
retired within the walls of Perinthus.</p>
<p>Next day, he sent for the generals and officers of the army. They had
already reached the fortification walls, when some one brought word to
Xenophon that if he set foot inside, he would be seized, and either meet
some ill fate there or more likely be delivered up to Pharnabazus. On
hearing this Xenophon sent forward the rest of the party, but for himself
pleaded that there was a sacrifice which he wished to offer. In this way
he contrived to turn back and consult the victims, "Would the gods allow
him to try and bring the army over to Seuthes?" On the one hand it was
plain that the idea of crossing over to Asia in the face of this man with
his ships of war, who meant to bar the passage, was too dangerous. Nor did
he altogether like the notion of being blocked up in the Chersonese with
an army in dire need of everything; where, besides being at the beck and
call of the governor of the place, they would be debarred from the
necessities of life.</p>
<p>While Xenophon was thus employed, the generals and officers came back with
a message from Aristarchus, who had told them they might retire for the
present, but in the afternoon he would expect them. The former suspicions
of a plot had now ripened to a certainty. Xenophon meantime had
ascertained that the victims were favourable to his project. He
personally, and the army as a whole, might with safety proceed to Seuthes,
they seemed to say. Accordingly, he took with him Polycrates, the Athenian
captain, and from each of the generals, not including Neon, some one man
whom they could in each case trust, and in the night they set off to visit
the army of Seuthes, sixty furlongs distant.</p>
<p>As they approached, they came upon some deserted watch-fires, and their
first impression was that Seuthes had shifted his position; but presently
perceiving a confused sound (the voices of Seuthes' people signalling to
one another), the explanation dawned on him: Seuthes kept his watch-fires
kindled in front of, instead of behind, his night pickets, in order that
the outposts, being in the dark, might escape notice, their numbers and
position thus being a mystery; whilst any party approaching from the
outside, so far from escaping notice, would, through the glare of the
fire, stand out conspicuously. Perceiving how matters stood, Xenophon sent
forward his interpreter, who was one of the party, and bade him inform
Seuthes that Xenophon was there and craved conference with him. The others
asked if he were an Athenian from the army yonder, and no sooner had the
interpreter replied, "Yes, the same," than up they leapt and galloped off;
and in less time than it takes to tell a couple of hundred peltasts had
come up who seized and carried off Xenophon and those with him and brought
them to Seuthes. The latter was in a tower right well guarded, and there
were horses round it in a circle, standing all ready bitted and bridled;
for his alarm was so great that he gave his horses their provender during
the day (2), and during the nights he kept watch and ward with the brutes
thus bitted and bridled. It was stated in explanation that in old days an
ancestor of his, named Teres, had been in this very country with a large
army, several of whom he had lost at the hands of the native inhabitants,
besides being robbed of his baggage train. The inhabitants of the country
are Thynians, and they are reputed to be far the most warlike set of
fighters—especially at night.</p>
<p>(2) I.e. "instead of letting them graze."<br/></p>
<p>When they drew near, Seuthes bade Xenophon enter, and bring with him any
two he might choose. As soon as they were inside, they first greeted one
another warmly, and then, according to the Thracian custom, pledged
themselves in bowls of wine. There was further present at the elbow of
Seuthes, Medosades, who on all occasions acted as his ambassador-in-chief.
Xenophon took the initiative and spoke as follows: "You have sent to me,
Seuthes, once and again. On the first occasion you sent Medosades yonder,
to Chalcedon, and you begged me to use my influence in favour of the army
crossing over from Asia. You promised me, in return for this conduct on my
part, various kindnesses; at least that is what Medosades stated"; and
before proceeding further he turned to Medosades and asked, "Is not that
so?" The other assented. "Again, on a second occasion, the same Medosades
came when I had crossed over from Parium to rejoin the army; and he
promised me that if I would bring you the army, you would in various
respects treat me as a friend and brother. He said especially with regard
to certain seaboard places of which you are the owner and lord, that you
were minded to make me a present of them." At this point he again
questioned Medosades, "Whether the words attributed to him were exact?"
and Medosades once more fully assented. "Come now," proceeded Xenophon,
"recount what answer I made you, and first at Chalcedon." "You answered
that the army was, in any case, about to cross over to Byzantium; and as
far as that went, there was no need to pay you or any one else anything;
and for yourself, you added, that once across you were minded to leave the
army, which thing came to pass even as you said." "Well! what did I say,"
he asked, "at your next visit, when you came to me in Selybria?" "You said
that the proposal was impossible; you were all going to Perinthus to cross
into Asia." "Good," said Xenophon, "and in spite of it all, at the present
moment, here I am myself, and Phryniscus, one of my colleagues, and
Polycrates yonder, a captain; and outside, to represent the other generals
(all except Neon the Laconian), the trustiest men they could find to send.
So that if you wish to give these transactions the seal of still greater
security, you have nothing to do but to summon them also; and do you,
Polycrates, go and say from me, that I bid them leave their arms outside,
and you can leave your own sword outside before you enter with them on
your return."</p>
<p>When Seuthes had heard so far, he interposed: "I should never mistrust an
Athenian, for we are relatives already (3), I know; and the best of
friends, I believe, we shall be." After that, as soon as the right men
entered, Xenophon first questioned Seuthes as to what use he intended to
make of the army, and he replied as follows: "Maesades was my father; his
sway extended over the Melanditae, the Thynians, and the Tranipsae. Then
the affairs of the Odrysians took a bad turn, and my father was driven out
of this country, and later on died himself of sickness, leaving me to be
brought up as an orphan at the court of Medocus, the present king. But I,
when I had grown to man's estate, could not endure to live with my eyes
fixed on another's board. So I seated myself on the seat by him as a
suppliant, and begged him to give me as many men as he could spare, that I
might wreak what mischief I could on those who had driven us forth from
our land; that thus I might cease to live in dependence upon another's
board, like a dog watching his master's hand. In answer to my petition, he
gave me the men and the horses which you will see at break of day, and
nowadays I live with these, pillaging my own ancestral land. But if you
would join me, I think, with the help of heaven, we might easily recover
my empire. That is what I want of you." "Well then," said Xenophon,
"supposing we came, what should you be able to give us? the soldiers, the
officers, and the generals? Tell us that these witnesses may report your
answer." And he promised to give "to the common soldiers a cyzicene (4),
to a captain twice as much, and to a general four times as much, with as
much land as ever they liked, some yoke of oxen, and a fortified place
upon the seaboard." "But now supposing," said Xenophon, "we fail of
success, in spite of our endeavours; suppose any intimidation on the part
of the Lacedaemonians should arise; will you receive into your country any
of us who may seek to find a refuge with you?" He answered: "Nay, not only
so, but I shall look upon you as my brothers, entitled to share my seat,
and the joint possessors of all the wealth which we may be able to
acquire. And to you yourself, O Xenophon! I will give my daughter, and if
you have a daughter, I will buy her in Thracian fashion; and I will give
you Bisanthe as a dwelling-place, which is the fairest of all my
possessions on the seaboard (5)."</p>
<p>(3) Tradition said that the Thracians and Athenians were connected,<br/>
through the marriage of a former prince Tereus (or Teres) with<br/>
Procne, the daughter of Pandion. This old story, discredited by<br/>
Thucydides, ii. 29, is referred to in Arist. "Birds," 368 foll.<br/>
The Birds are about to charge the two Athenian intruders, when<br/>
Epops, king of the Birds, formerly Tereus, king of Thrace, but<br/>
long ago transformed into a hoopoe, intercedes in behalf of two<br/>
men, {tes emes gunaikos onte suggene kai phuleta}, "who are of my<br/>
lady's tribe and kin." As a matter of history, the Athenians had<br/>
in the year B.C. 431 made alliance with Sitalces, king of the<br/>
Odrysians (the son of Teres, the first founder of their empire),<br/>
and made his son, Sadocus, an Athenian citizen. Cf. Thuc. ib.;<br/>
Arist. Acharnians, 141 foll.<br/>
<br/>
(4) A cyzicene monthly is to be understood.<br/>
<br/>
(5) Bisanthe, one of the Ionic colonies founded by Samos, with the<br/>
Thracian name Rhaedestus (now Rodosto), strongly placed so as to<br/>
command the entrance into the Sacred mountain.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0055" id="link2H_4_0055"></SPAN></p>
<h2> III </h2>
<p>After listening to these proposals, they gave and accepted pledges of good
faith; and so the deputation rode off. Before day they were back again in
camp, and severally rendered a report to those who sent them. At dawn
Aristarchus again summoned the generals and officers, but the latter
resolved to have done with the visit to Aristarchus, and to summon a
meeting of the army. In full conclave the soldiers met, with the exception
of Neon's men, who remained about ten furlongs off. When they were met
together Xenophon rose, and made the following announcement: "Men,
Aristarchus with his ships of war hinders us from sailing where we fain
would go; it is not even safe to set foot on board a vessel. But if he
hinders us here, he hastens us there. 'Be off to the Chersonese,' says he,
'force a passage through the Sacred mountain.' If we master it and succeed
in getting to that place, he has something in store for us. He promises
that he will not sell you any more, as he did at Byzantium; you shall not
be cheated again; you shall have pay; he will no longer, as now, suffer
you to remain in want of provisions. That is his proposal. But Seuthes
says that if you will go to him he will treat you well. What you have now
to consider is, whether you will stay to debate this question, or leave
its settlement till we have gone up into a land of provisions. If you ask
me my opinion, it is this: Since here we have neither money to buy, nor
leave to take without money what we need, why should we not go up into
these villages where the right to help ourselves is conferred by might?
There, unhampered by the want of bare necessaries, you can listen to what
this man and the other wants of you and choose whichever sounds best. Let
those," he added, "who agree to this, hold up their hands." They all held
them up. "Retire then," said he, "and get your kit together, and at the
word of command, follow your leader."</p>
<p>After this, Xenophon put himself at the head and the rest followed. Neon,
indeed, and other agents from Aristarchus tried to turn them from their
purpose, but to their persuasions they turned a deaf ear. They had not
advanced much more than three miles, when Seuthes met them; and Xenophon,
seeing him, bade him ride up. He wished to tell him what they felt to be
conducive to their interests, and in the presence of as many witnesses as
possible. As soon as he had approached, Xenophon said: "We are going where
the troops will have enough to live upon; when we are there, we will
listen to you and to the emissaries of the Laconian, and choose between
you both whatever seems best. If then you will lead us where provisions
are to be got in plenty, we shall feel indebted to you for your
hospitality." And Seuthes answered: "For the matter of that, I know many
villages, close-packed and stocked with all kinds of provisions, just far
enough off to give you a good appetite for your breakfasts." "Lead on
then!" said Xenophon. When they had reached the villages in the afternoon,
the soldiers met, and Seuthes made the following speech: "My request to
you, sirs, is that you will take the field with me, and my promise to you
is that I will give every man of you a cyzicene, and to the officers and
generals at the customary rate; besides this I will honour those who show
special merit. Food and drink you shall get as now for yourselves from the
country; but whatever is captured, I shall claim to have myself, so that
by distribution of it I may provide you with pay. Let them flee, let them
creep into hiding-places, we shall be able to pursue after them, we will
track them out; or if they resist, along with you we will endeavour to
subdue them to our hands." Xenophon inquired: "And how far from the sea
shall you expect the army to follow you?" "Nowhere more than seven days'
journey," he answered, "and in many places less."</p>
<p>After this, permission was given for all who wished to speak, and many
spoke, but ever to one and the same tune: "What Seuthes said, was very
right. It was winter, and for a man to sail home, even if he had the will
to do so, was impossible. On the other hand, to continue long in a
friendly country, where they must depend upon what they could purchase,
was equally beyond their power. If they were to wear away time and support
life in a hostile country, it was safer to do so with Seuthes than by
themselves, not to speak of all these good things; but if they were going
to get pay into the bargain, that indeed was a godsend." To complete the
proceedings, Xenophon said: "If any one opposes the measure, let him state
his views; if not, let the officer put the proposition to the vote." No
one opposed; they put it to the vote, and the resolution was carried; and
without loss of time, he informed Seuthes that they would take the field
with him.</p>
<p>After this the troops messed in their separate divisions, but the generals
and officers were invited by Seuthes to dinner at a neighbouring village
which was in his possession. When they were at the doors, and on the point
of stepping in to dinner, they were met by a certain Heracleides, of
Maronea (1). He came up to each guest, addressing himself particularly to
those who, as he conjectured, ought to be able to make a present to
Seuthes. He addressed himself first to some Parians who were there to
arrange a friendship with Medocus, the king of the Odrysians, and were
bearers of presents to the king and to his wife. Heracleides reminded
them: "Medocus is up country twelve days' journey from the sea; but
Seuthes, now that he has got this army, will be lord on the sea-coast; as
your neighbour, then, he is the man to do you good or do you ill. If you
are wise, you will give him whatever he askes of you. On the whole, it
will be laid out at better interest than if you have it to Medocus, who
lives so far off." That was his mode of persuasion in their case. Next he
came to Timasion the Dardanian, who, some one had told him, was the happy
possessor of certain goblets and oriental carpets. What he said to him
was: "It is customary when people are invited to dinner by Seuthes for the
guests to make him a present; now if he should become a great person in
these parts, he will be able to restore you to your native land, or to
make you a rich man here." Such were the solicitations which he applied to
each man in turn whom he accosted. Presently he came to Xenophon and said:
"You are at once a citizen of no mean city, and with Seuthes also your own
name is very great. Maybe you expect to obtain a fort or two in this
country, just as others of your countrymen have done (2), and territory.
It is only right and proper therefore that you should honour Seuthes in
the most magnificent style. Be sure, I give this advice out of pure
friendliness, for I know that the greater the gift that you are ready to
bestow on him, the better the treatment you will receive at his hands."
Xenophon, on hearing this, was in a sad dilemma, for he had brought with
him, when he crossed from Parium, nothing but one boy and just enough to
pay his travelling expenses.</p>
<p>(1) A Greek colony in Thrace. Among Asiatico-Ionian colonies were<br/>
Abdera, founded by Teos, and Maroneia, celebrated for its wine,<br/>
founded by Chios about 540 B.C.—Kiepert, "Man. Anct. Geog." viii.<br/>
182.<br/>
<br/>
(2) Notably Alcibiades, who possessed two or three such fortresses.<br/></p>
<p>As soon as the company, consisting of the most powerful Thracians there
present, with the generals and captains of the Hellenes, and any embassy
from a state which might be there, had arrived, they were seated in a
circle, and the dinner was served. Thereupon three-legged stools were
brought in and placed in front of the assembled guests. They were laden
with pieces of meat, piled up, and there were huge leavened-loaves
fastened on to the pieces of meat with long skewers. The tables, as a
rule, were set beside the guests at intervals. That was the custom; and
Seuthes set the fashion of the performance. He took up the loaves which
lay by his side and broke them into little pieces, and then threw the
fragments here to one and there to another as seemed to him good; and so
with the meat likewise, leaving for himself the merest taste. Then the
rest fell to following the fashion set them, those that is who had tables
placed beside them.</p>
<p>Now there was an Arcadian, Arystas by name, a huge eater; he soon got
tired of throwing the pieces about, and seized a good three-quarters loaf
in his two hands, placed some pieces of meat upon his knees, and proceeded
to discuss his dinner. Then beakers of wine were brought round, and every
one partook in turn; but when the cupbearer came to Arystas and handed him
the bowl, he looked up, and seeing that Xenophon had done eating: "Give it
him," quoth he, "he is more at leisure. I have something better to do at
present." Seuthes, hearing a remark, asked the cupbearer what was said,
and the cupbearer, who knew how to talk Greek, explained. Then followed a
peal of laughter.</p>
<p>When the drinking had advanced somewhat, in came a Thracian with a white
horse, who snatched the brimming bowl and said: "Here's a health to thee,
O Seuthes! Let me present thee with this horse. Mounted on him, thou shalt
capture whom thou choosest to pursue, or retiring from battle, thou shalt
not dread the foe." He was followed by one who brought in a boy, and
presented him in proper style with "Here's a health to thee, O Seuthes!" A
third had "clothes for his wife." Timasion, the Dardanian, pledged
Seuthes, and presented a silver bowl (3) and a carpet worth ten minae.
Gnesippus, an Athenian, got up and said: "It was a good old custom, and a
fine one too, that those who had, should give to the king for honour's
sake, but to those who had not, the king should give; whereby, my lord,"
he added, "I too may one day have the wherewithal to give thee gifts and
honour." Xenophon the while was racking his brains what he was to do; he
was not the happier because he was seated in the seat next Seuthes as a
mark of honour; and Heracleides bade the cupbearer hand him the bowl. The
wine had perhaps a little mounted to his head; he rose, and manfully
seized the cup, and spoke: "I also, Seuthes, have to present you with
myself and these my dear comrades to be your trusty friends, and not one
of them against his will. They are more ready, one and all, still more
than I, to be your friends. Here they are; they ask nothing from you in
return, rather they are forward to labour in your behalf; it will be their
pleasure to bear the brunt of battle in voluntary service. With them, God
willing, you will gain vast territory; you will recover what was once your
forefathers'; you will win for yourself new lands; and not lands only, but
horses many, and of men a multitude, and many a fair dame besides. You
will not need to seize upon them in robber fashion; it is your friends
here who, of their own accord, shall take and bring them to you, they
shall lay them at your feet as gifts." Up got Seuthes and drained with him
the cup, and with him sprinkled the last drops fraternally (4).</p>
<p>(3) Or rather "saucer" ({phiale}).<br/>
<br/>
(4) For the Thracian custom, vide Suidas, s.v. {kataskedazein}.<br/></p>
<p>At this stage entered musicians blowing upon horns such as they use for
signal calls, and trumpeting on trumpets, made of raw oxhide, tunes and
airs, like the music of the double-octave harp (5). Seuthes himself got up
and shouted, trolling forth a war song; then he sprang from his place and
leapt about as though he would guard himself against a missile, in right
nimble style. Then came in a set of clowns and jesters.</p>
<p>(5) Or, "magadis." This is said to have been one of the most perfect<br/>
instruments. It comprised two full octaves, the left hand playing<br/>
the same notes as the right an octave lower. Guhl and Koner, p.<br/>
203, Engl. transl. See also "Dict. Antiq." "Musica"; and Arist.<br/>
"Polit." xix. 18, {Dia ti e dia pason sumphonia adetai mone;<br/>
magasizousi gar tauten, allen de oudemian}, i.e. "since no<br/>
interval except the octave ({dia pason}) could be 'magidised' (the<br/>
effect of any other is well known to be intolerable), therefore no<br/>
other interval was employed at all."<br/></p>
<p>But when the sun began to set, the Hellenes rose from their seats. It was
time, they said, to place the night sentinels and to pass the watchword;
further, they begged of Seuthes to issue an order that none of the
Thracians were to enter the Hellenic camp at night, "since between your
Thracian foes and our Thracian friends there might be some confusion." As
they sallied forth, Seuthes rose to accompany them, like the soberest of
men. When they were outside, he summoned the generals apart and said:
"Sirs, our enemies are not aware as yet of our alliance. If, therefore, we
attack them before they take precautions not to be caught, or are prepared
to repel assault, we shall make a fine haul of captives and other stock."
The generals fully approved of these views, and bade him lead on. He
answered: "Prepare and wait; as soon as the right time comes I will be
with you. I shall pick up the peltasts and yourselves, and with the help
of the gods, I will lead on." "But consider one point," urged Xenophon;
"if we are to march by night, is not the Hellenic fashion best? When
marching in the daytime that part of the army leads the van which seems
best suited to the nature of the country to be traversed—heavy or
light infantry, or cavalry; but by night our rule is that the slowest arm
should take the lead. Thus we avoid the risk of being pulled to pieces:
and it is not so easy for a man to give his neighbour the slip without
intending, whereas the scattered fragments of an army are apt to fall foul
of one another, and to cause damage or incur it in sheer ignorance." To
this Seuthes replied: "You reason well, and I will adopt your custom. I
will furnish you with guides chosen from the oldest experts of the
country, and I will myself follow with the cavalry in the rear; it will
not take me long, if need be, to present myself at the front." Then, for
kinship's sake, they chose "Athenaia (6)" as their watchword. With this,
they turned and sought repose.</p>
<p>(6) "Our Lady of Athens."<br/></p>
<p>It was about midnight when Seuthes presented himself with his cavalry
troopers armed with corselets, and his light infantry under arms. As soon
as he had handed over to them the promised guides, the heavy infantry took
the van, followed by the light troops in the centre, while the cavalry
brought up the rear. At daybreak Seuthes rode up to the front. He
complimented them on their method: so often had he himself, while marching
by night with a mere handful of men, been separated with his cavalry from
his infantry. "But now," said he, "we find ourselves at dawn of day all
happily together, just as we ought to be. Do you wait for me here," he
proceeded, "and recruit yourselves. I will take a look round and rejoin
you." So saying he took a certain path over hill and rode off. As soon as
he had reached deep snow, he looked to see whether there were footprints
of human beings leading forward or in the opposite direction; and having
satisfied himself that the road was untrodden, back he came, exclaiming:
"God willing, sirs, it will be all right; we shall fall on the fellows,
before they know where they are. I will lead on with the cavalry; so that
if we catch sight of any one, he shall not escape and give warning to the
enemy. Do you follow, and if you are left behind, keep to the trail of the
horses. Once on the other side of the mountains, we shall find ourselves
in numerous thriving villages."</p>
<p>By the middle of the day he had already gained the top of the pass and
looked down upon the villages below. Back he came riding to the heavy
infantry and said: "I will at once send off the cavalry into the plain
below, and the peltasts too, to attack the villages. Do you follow with
what speed you may, so that in case of resistance you may lend us your
aid." Hearing this, Xenophon dismounted, and the other asked: "Why do you
dismount just when speed is the thing we want?" The other answered: "But
you do not want me alone, I am sure. The hoplites will run all the quicker
and more cheerily if I lead them on foot."</p>
<p>Thereupon Seuthes went off, and Timasion with him, taking the Hellene
squadron of something like forty troopers. Then Xenophon passed the order:
the active young fellows up to thirty years of age from the different
companies to the front; and off with these he went himself, bowling along
(7); while Cleanor led the other Hellenes. When they had reached the
villages, Seuthes, with about thirty troopers, rode up, exclaiming: "Well,
Xenophon, this is just what you said! the fellows are caught, but now look
here. My cavalry have gone off unsupported; they are scattered in pursuit,
one here, one there, and upon my word, I am more than half afraid the
enemy will collect somewhere and do them a mischief. Some of us must
remain in the villages, for they are swarming with human beings." "Well
then," said Xenophon, "I will seize the heights with the men I have with
me, and do you bid Cleanor extend his line along the level beside the
villages." When they had done so, there were enclosed—of captives
for the slave market, one thousand; of cattle, two thousand; and of other
small cattle, ten thousand. For the time being they took up quarters
there.</p>
<p>(7) {etropkhaze}, a favourite word with our author. Herodotus uses it;<br/>
so does Aristot.; so also Polybius; but the Atticists condemn it,<br/>
except of course in poetry.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0056" id="link2H_4_0056"></SPAN></p>
<h2> IV </h2>
<p>But the next day Seuthes burnt the villages to the ground; he left not a
single house, being minded to inspire terror in the rest of his enemies,
and to show them what they also were to expect, if they refused obedience;
and so he went back again. As to the booty, he sent off Heracliedes to
Perinthus to dispose of it, with a view to future pay for the soldiers.
But for himself he encamped with the Hellenes in the lowland country of
the Thynians, the natives leaving the flats and betaking themselves in
flight to the uplands.</p>
<p>There was deep snow, and cold so intense that the water brought in for
dinner and the wine within the jars froze; and many of the Hellenes had
their noses and ears frost-bitten. Now they came to understand why the
Thracians wear fox-skin caps on their heads and about their ears; and why,
on the same principle, they are frocked not only about the chest and bust
but so as to cover the loins and thighs as well; and why on horseback they
envelop themselves in long shawls which reach down to the feet, instead of
the ordinary short rider's cloak. Seuthes sent off some of the prisoners
to the hills with a message to say that if they did not come down to their
homes, and live quietly and obey him, he would burn down their villages
and their corn, and leave them to perish with hunger. Thereupon down they
came, women and children and the older men; the younger men preferred to
quarter themselves in the villages on the skirts of the hills. On
discovering this, Seuthes bade Xenophon take the youngest of the heavy
infantry and join him on an expedition. They rose in the night, and by
daybreak had reached the villages; but the majority of the inhabitants
made good their escape, for the hills were close at hand. Those whom he
did catch, Seuthes unsparingly shot down.</p>
<p>Now there was a certain Olynthian, named Episthenes; he was a great lover
of boys, and seeing a handsome lad, just in the bloom of youth, and
carrying a light shield, about to be slain, he ran up to Xenophon and
supplicated him to rescue the fair youth. Xenophon went to Seuthes and
begged him not to put the boy to death. He explained to him the
disposition of Episthenes; how he had once enrolled a company, the only
qualification required being that of personal beauty; and with these
handsome young men at his side there were none so brave as he. Seuthes put
the question, "Would you like to die on his behalf, Episthenes?" whereat
the other stretched out his neck, and said, "Strike, if the boy bids you,
and will thank his preserver." Seuthes, turning to the boy, asked, "Shall
I smite him instead of you?" The boy shook his head, imploring him to slay
neither the one nor the other, whereupon Episthenes caught the lad in his
arms, exclaiming, "It is time you did battle with me, Seuthes, for my boy;
never will I yield him up," and Seuthes laughed: "what must be must," and
so consented.</p>
<p>In these villages he decided that they must bivouac, so that the men on
the mountains might be still further deprived of subsistence. Stealthily
descending he himself found quarters in the plain; while Xenophon with his
picked troops encamped in the highest village on the skirts of the hills,;
and the rest of the Hellenes hard by, among the highland Thracians (1), as
they are called.</p>
<p>(1) Cf. "Highlanders."<br/></p>
<p>After this, not many days had idly slipt away before the Thracians from
the mountains came down and wished to arrange with Seuthes for terms of
truce and hostages. Simultaneously came Xenophon and informed Seuthes that
they were camped in bad quarters, with the enemy next door; "it would be
pleasanter too," he added, "to bivouac in a strong position in the open,
than under cover on the edge of destruction." The other bade him take
heart and pointed to some of their hostages, as much as to say "Look
there!" Parties also from the mountaineers came down and pleaded with
Xenophon himself, to help arrange a truce for them. This he agreed to do,
bidding them to pluck up heart, and assuring them that they would meet
with no mischief, if they yielded obedience to Seuthes. All their
parleying, however, was, as it turned out, merely to get a closer
inspection of things. This happened in the day, and in the following night
the Thynians descended from the hill country and made an attack. In each
case, the guide was the master of the house attacked; otherwise it would
have taxed their powers to discover the houses in the dark, which, for the
sake of their flocks and herds, were palisaded all round with great
stockades. As soon as they had reached the doors of any particular house,
the attack began, some hurling in their spears, others belabouring with
their clubs, which they carried, it was said, for the purpose of knocking
off the lance points from the shaft. Others were busy setting the place on
fire; and they kept calling Xenophon by name: "Come out, Xenophon, and die
like a man, or we will roast you alive inside."</p>
<p>By this time too the flames were making their appearance through the roof,
and Xenophon and his followers were within, with their coats of mail on,
and big shields, swords, and helmets. Then Silanus, a Macistian (2), a
youth of some eighteen years, signalled on the trumpet; and in an instant,
out they all leapt with their drawn swords, and the inmates of other
quarters as well. The Thracians took to their heels, according to their
custom, swinging their light shields round their backs. As they leapt over
the stockade some were captured, hanging on the top with their shields
caught in the palings; others missed the way out, and so were slain; and
the Hellenes chased them hotly, till they were outside the village.</p>
<p>(2) "Of Macistus," a town in the Triphylia near Scillus.<br/></p>
<p>A party of Thynians turned back, and as the men ran past in bold relief
against a blazing house, they let fly a volley of javelins, out of the
darkness into the glare, and wounded two captains, Hieronymus, an Euodean
(3), and Theogenes, a Locrian. No one was killed, only the clothes and
baggage of some of the men were consumed in the flames. Presently up came
Seuthes to the rescue with seven troopers, the first to hand, and his
Thracian trumpeteer by his side. Seeing that something had happened, he
hastened to the rescue, and ever the while his bugler wound his horn,
which music added terror to the foe. Arrived at length, he greeted them
with outstretched hand, exclaiming, "I thought to find you all dead men."</p>
<p>(3) If this is the same man as Hieronymus of Elis, who has been<br/>
mentioned two or three times already, possibly the word {Euodea}<br/>
points to some town or district of Elis; or perhaps the text is<br/>
corrupt.<br/></p>
<p>After that, Xenophon begged him to hand over the hostages to himself, and
if so disposed, to join him on an expedition to the hills, or if not, to
let him go alone. Accordingly the next day Seuthes delivered up the
hostages. They were men already advanced in years, but the pick of the
mountaineers, as they themselves gave out. Not merely did Seuthes do this,
but he came himself, with his force at his back (and by this time he had
treble his former force, for many of the Odrysians, hearing of his
proceedings, came down to join in the campaign); and the Thynians, espying
from the mountains the vast array of heavy infantry and light infantry and
cavalry, rank upon rank, came down and supplicated him to make terms.
"They were ready," they professed, "to do all that he demanded; let him
take pledges of their good faith." So Seuthes summoned Xenophon and
explained their proposals, adding that he should make no terms with them,
if Xenophon wished to punish them for their night attack. The latter
replied: "For my part, I should think their punishment is great enough
already, if they are to be slaves instead of free men; still," he added,
"I advise you for the future to take as hostages those who are most
capable of doing mischief, and to let the old men abide in peace at home."
So to a man they gave in their adhesion in that quarter of the country.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0057" id="link2H_4_0057"></SPAN></p>
<h2> V </h2>
<p>Crossing over in the direction of the Thracians above Byzantium, they<br/>
reached the Delta, as it is called. Here they were no longer in the<br/>
territory of the Maesades, but in the country of Teres the Odrysian<br/>
(an ancient worthy (1)). Here Heracleides met them with the proceeds of<br/>
the spoil, and Seuthes picked out three pairs of mules (there were<br/>
only three, the other teams being oxen); then he summoned Xenophon and<br/>
bade him take them, and divide the rest between the generals and<br/>
officers, to which Xenophon replied that for himself, he was content<br/>
to receive his share another time, but added: "Make a present of these<br/>
to my friends here, the generals who have served with me, and to the<br/>
officers." So of the pairs of mules Timasion the Dardanian received<br/>
one, Cleanor the Orchomenian one, and Phryniscus the Achaean one. The<br/>
teams of oxen were divided among the officers. Then Seuthes proceeded<br/>
to remit pay due for the month already passed, but all he could give<br/>
was the equivalent of twenty days. Heracleides insisted that this was<br/>
all he had got by his trafficking. Whereupon Xenophon with some warmth<br/>
exclaimed: "Upon my word, Heracleides, I do not think you care for<br/>
Seuthes' interest as you should. If you did, you have been at pains to<br/>
bring back the full amount of the pay, even if you had had to raise a<br/>
loan to do so, and, if by no other means, by selling the coat off your<br/>
own back."<br/>
<br/>
(1) See above re previous Teres. The words "an ancient worthy" may<br/>
possibly be an editor's or commentator's note.<br/></p>
<p>What he said annoyed Heracleides, who was afraid of being ousted from the
friendship of Seuthes, and from that day forward he did his best to
calumniate Xenophon before Seuthes. The soldiers, on their side, laid the
blame of course on Xenophon: "Where was their pay?" and Seuthes was vexed
with him for persistently demanding it for them. Up to this date he had
frequently referred to what he would do when he got to the seaboard again;
how he intended to hand over to him Bisanthe, Ganos, and Neontichos (2).
But from this time forward he never mentioned one of them again. The
slanderous tongue of Heracleides had whispered him:—it was not safe
to hand over fortified towns to a man with a force at his back.</p>
<p>(2) For Bisanthe see above. Ganos, a little lower down the coast, with<br/>
Neontichos once belonged to Alcibiades, if we may believe<br/>
Cornelius Nepos, "Alc." vii. 4, and Plutarch, "Alc." c. 36. See<br/>
above.<br/></p>
<p>Consequently Xenophon fell to considering what he ought to do as regards
marching any further up the country; and Heracleides introduced the other
generals to Seuthes, urging them to say that they were quite as well able
to lead the army as Xenophon, and promising them that within a day or two
they should have full pay for two months, and he again implored them to
continue the campaign with Seuthes. To which Timasion replied that for his
part he would continue no campaign without Xenophon; not even if they were
to give him pay for five months; and what Timasion said, Phryniscus and
Cleanor repeated; the views of all three coincided.</p>
<p>Seuthes fell to upbraiding Heracleides in round terms. "Why had he not
invited Xenophon with the others?" and presently they invited him, but by
himself alone. He, perceiving the knavery of Heracleides, and that his
object was to calumniate him with the other generals, presented himself;
but at the same time he took care to bring all the generals and the
officers. After their joint consent had been secured, they continued the
campaign. Keeping the Pontus on their right, they passed through the
millet-eating (3) Thracians, as they are called, and reached Salmydessus.
This is a point at which many trading vessels bound for the Black Sea run
aground and are wrecked, owing to a sort of marshy ledge or sandbank which
runs out for a considerable distance into the sea (4). The Thracians, who
dwell in these parts, have set up pillars as boundary marks, and each set
of them has the pillage of its own flotsom and jetsom; for in old days,
before they set up these landmarks, the wreckers, it is said, used freely
to fall foul of and slay one another. Here was a rich treasure trove, of
beds and boxes numberless, with a mass of written books, and all the
various things which mariners carry in their wooden chests. Having reduced
this district, they turned round and went back again. By this time the
army of Seuthes had grown to be considerably larger than the Hellenic
army; for on the one hand, the Odrysians flocked down in still larger
numbers, and on the other, the tribes which gave in their adhesion from
time to time were amalgamated with his armament. They got into quarters on
the flat country above Selybria at about three miles (5) distance from the
sea. As to pay, not a penny was as yet forthcoming, and the soldiers were
cruelly disaffected to Xenophon, whilst Seuthes, on his side, was no
longer so friendlily disposed. If Xenophon ever wished to come face to
face with him, want of leisure or some other difficulty always seemed to
present itself.</p>
<p>(3) Or, "the Melinophagi."<br/>
<br/>
(4) See, for a description of this savage coast, Aesch. "Prom." vinc.<br/>
726, etc.—<br/></p>
<p>"{trakheia pontou Salmudesia gnathos ekhthroxenos nautaisi, metruia
neon.}"</p>
<p>"The rugged Salmudesian jaw of the Black Sea, Inhospitable to sailors,
stepmother of ships."</p>
<p>But the poet is at fault in his geography, since he connects "the
Salmydesian jaw" with the Thermodon.</p>
<p>(5) Lit. "thirty stades." Selybria is about fourty-four miles from<br/>
Byzantium, two-thirds of the way to Perinthus.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0058" id="link2H_4_0058"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VI </h2>
<p>At this date, when nearly two months had already passed, an embassy
arrived. These were two agents from Thibron—Charminus, a
Lacedaemonian, and Polynicus. They were sent to say that the
Lacedaemonians had resolved to open a campaign against Tissaphernes, and
that Thibron, who had set sail to conduct the war, was anxious to avail
himself of the troops. He could guarantee that each soldier should receive
a daric a month as pay, the officers double pay, and the generals
quadruple. The Lacedaemonian emissaries had no sooner arrived than
Heracleides, having learnt that they had come in search of the Hellenic
troops, goes off himself to Seuthes and says: "The best thing that could
have happened; the Lacedaemonians want these troops and you have done with
them, so that if you hand over the troops to them, you will do the
Lacedaemonians a good turn and will cease to be bothered for pay any more.
The country will be quit of them once and for ever."</p>
<p>On hearing this Seuthes bade him introduce the emissaries. As soon as they
had stated that the object of their coming was to treat for the Hellenic
troops, he replied that he would willingly give them up, that his one
desire was to be the friend and ally of Lacedaemon. So he invited them to
partake of hospitality, and entertained them magnificently; but he did not
invite Xenophon, nor indeed any of the other generals. Presently the
Lacedaemonians asked: "What sort of man is Xenophon?" and Seuthes
answered: "Not a bad fellow in most respects; but he is too much the
soldiers' friend; and that is why it goes ill with him." They asked: "Does
he play the popular leader?" and Heracleides answered: "Exactly so." "Well
then," said they, "he will oppose our taking away the troops, will he
not?" "To be sure he will," said Heracleides; "but you have only to call a
meeting of the whole body, and promise them pay, and little further heed
will they pay to him; they will run off with you." "How then are we to get
them collected?" they asked. "Early to-morrow," said Heracleides, "we will
bring you to them; and I know," he added once more, "as soon as they set
eyes on you, they will flock to you with alacrity." Thus the day ended.</p>
<p>The next day Seuthes and Heracleides brought the two Laconian agents to
the army, and the troops were collected, and the agents made a statement
as follows: "The Lacedaemonians have resolved on war with Tissaphernes,
who did you so much wrong. By going with us therefore you will punish your
enemy, and each of you will get a daric a month, the officers twice that
sum, and the generals quadruple." The soldiers lent willing ears, and up
jumped one of the Arcadians at once, to find fault with Xenophon. Seuthes
also was hard by, wishing to know what was going to happen. He stood
within ear shot, and his interpreter by his side; not but what he could
understand most of what was said in Greek himself. At this point the
Arcadian spoke: "For the matter of that, Lacedaemonians, we should have
been by your sides long ago, if Xenophon had not persuaded us and brought
us hither. We have never ceased campaigning, night and day, the dismal
winter through, but he reaps the fruit of our toils. Seuthes has enriched
him privately, but deprives us of our honest earnings; so that, standing
here as I do to address you first, all I can say is, that if I might see
the fellow stoned to death as a penalty for all the long dance he has led
us, I should feel I had got my pay in full, and no longer grudge the pains
we have undergone." The speaker was followed by another and then another
in the same strain; and after that Xenophon made the following speech:—</p>
<p>"True is the old adage; there is nothing which mortal man may not expect
to see. Here am I being accused by you to-day, just where my conscience
tells me that I have displayed the greatest zeal on your behalf. Was I not
actually on my road home when I turned back? Not, God knows, because I
learned that you were in luck's way, but because I heard that you were in
sore straits, and I wished to help you, if in any way I could. I returned,
and Seuthes yonder sent me messenger after messenger, and made me promise
upon promise, if only I could persuade you to come to him. Yet, as you
yourselves will bear me witness, I was not to be diverted. Instead of
setting my hand to do that, I simply led you to a point from which, with
least loss of time, I thought you could cross into Asia. This I believed
was the best thing for you, and you I knew desired it.</p>
<p>"But when Aristarchus came with his ships of war and hindered our passage
across, you will hardly quarrel with me for the step I then took in
calling you together that we might advisedly consider our best course.
Having heard both sides—first Aristarchus, who ordered you to march
to the Chersonese, then Seuthes, who pleaded with you to undertake a
campaign with himself—you all proposed to go with Seuthes; and you
all gave your votes to that effect. What wrong did I commit in bringing
you, whither you were eager to go? If, indeed, since the time when Seuthes
began to tell lies and cheat us about the pay, I have supported him in
this, you may justly find fault with me and hate me. But if I, who at
first was most of all his friend, to-day am more than any one else at
variance with him, how can I, who have chosen you and rejected Seuthes, in
fairness be blamed by you for the very thing which has been the ground of
quarrel between him and me? But you will tell me, perhaps, that I get from
Seuthes what is by right yours, and that I deal subtly by you? But is it
not clear that, if Seuthes has paid me anything, he has at any rate not
done so with the intention of losing by what he gives me, whilst he is
still your debtor? If he gave to me, he gave in order that, by a small
gift to me, he might escape a larger payment to yourselves. But if that is
what you really think has happened, you can render this whole scheme of
ours null and void in an instant by exacting from him the money which is
your due. It is clear, Seuthes will demand back from me whatever I have
got from him, and he will have all the more right to do so, if I have
failed to secure for him what he bargained for when I took his gifts. But
indeed, I am far removed from enjoying what is yours, and I swear to you
by all the gods and goddesses that I have not taken even what Seuthes
promised me in private. He is present himself and listening, and he is
aware in his own heart whether I swear falsely. And what will surprise you
the more, I can swear besides, that I have not received even what the
other generals have received, no, nor yet what some of the officers have
received. But how so? why have I managed my affairs no better? I thought,
sirs, the more I helped him to bear his poverty at the time, the more I
should make him my friend in the day of his power. Whereas, it is just
when I see the star of his good fortune rising, that I have come to divine
the secret of his character.</p>
<p>"Some one may say, are you not ashamed to be so taken in like a fool? Yes,
I should be ashamed, if it had been an open enemy who had so deceived me.
But, to my mind, when friend cheats friend, a deeper stain attaches to the
perpetrator than to the victim of deceit. Whatever precaution a man may
take against his friend, that we took in full. We certainly gave him no
pretext for refusing to pay us what he promised. We were perfectly upright
in our dealings with him. We did not dawdle over his affairs, nor did we
shrink from any work to which he challenged us.</p>
<p>"But you will say, I ought to have taken security of him at the time, so
that had he fostered the wish, he might have lacked the ability to
deceive. To meet that retort, I must beg you to listen to certain things,
which I should never have said in his presence, except for your utter want
of feeling towards me, or your extraordinary ingratitude. Try and recall
the posture of your affairs, when I extricated you and brought you to
Seuthes. Do you not recollect how at Perinthus Aristarchus shut the gates
in your faces each time you offered to approach the town, and how you were
driven to camp outside under the canopy of heaven? It was midwinter; you
were thrown upon the resources of a market wherein few were the articles
offered for sale, and scanty the wherewithal to purchase them. Yet stay in
Thrace you must, for there were ships of war riding at anchor in the bay,
ready to hinder your passage across; and what did that stay imply? It
meant being in a hostile country, confronted by countless cavalry, legions
of light infantry. And what had we? A heavy infantry force certainly, with
which we could have dashed at villages in a body possibly, and seized a
modicum of food at most; but as to pursuing the enemy with such a force as
ours, or capturing men or cattle, the thing was out of the question; for
when I rejoined you your original cavalry and light infantry divisions had
disappeared. In such sore straits you lay!</p>
<p>"Supposing that, without making any demands for pay whatever, I had merely
won for you the alliance of Seuthes—whose cavalry and light infantry
were just what you needed—would you not have thought that I had
planned very well for you? I presume, it was through your partnership with
him and his that you were able to find such complete stores of corn in the
villages, when the Thracians were driven to take to their heels in such
hot haste, and you had so large a share of captives and cattle. Why! from
the day on which his cavalry force was attached to us, we never set eyes
on a single foeman in the field, though up to that date the enemy with his
cavalry and his light infantry used undauntedly to hang on our heels, and
effectually prevented us from scattering in small bodies and reaping a
rich harvest of provisions. But if he who partly gave you this security
has failed to pay in full the wages due to you therefrom, is not that a
terrible misfortune? So monstrous indeed that you think I ought not to go
forth alive (1).</p>
<p>(1) I.e. the fate of a scape-goat is too good for me.<br/></p>
<p>"But let me ask you, in what condition do you turn your backs on this land
to-day? Have you not wintered here in the lap of plenty? Whatever you have
got from Seuthes has been surplus gain. Your enemies have had to meet the
bill of your expenses, whilst you led a merry round of existence, in which
you have not once set eyes on the dead body of a comrade or lost one
living man. Again, if you have achieved any, (or rather many) noble deeds
against the Asiatic barbarian, you have them safe. And in addition to
these to-day you have won for yourselves a second glory. You undertook a
campaign against the European Thracians, and have mastered them. What I
say then is, that these very matters which you make a ground of quarrel
against myself, are rather blessings for which you ought to show gratitude
to heaven.</p>
<p>"Thus far I have confined myself to your side of the matter. Bear with me,
I beg you, while we examine mine. When I first essayed to part with you
and journey homewards, I was doubly blest. From your lips I had won some
praise, and, thanks to you, I had obtained glory from the rest of Hellas.
I was trusted by the Lacedaemonians; else would they not have sent me back
to you. Whereas to-day I turn to go, calumniated before the Lacedaemonians
by yourselves, detested in your behalf by Seuthes, whom I meant so to
benefit, by help of you, that I should find in him a refuge for myself and
for my children, if children I might have, in after time. And you the
while, for whose sake I have incurred so much hate, the hate of people far
superior to me in strength, you, for whom I have not yet ceased to devise
all the good I can, entertain such sentiments about me. Why? I am no
renegade or runaway slave, you have got hold of. If you carry out what you
say, be sure you will have done to death a man who has passed many a vigil
in watching over you; who has shared with you many a toil and run many a
risk in turn and out of turn; who, thanks to the gracious gods! has by
your side set up full many a trophy over the barbarian; who, lastly, has
strained every nerve in his body to protect you against yourselves. And so
it is, that to-day you can move freely, where you choose, by sea or by
land, and no one can say you nay; and you, on whom this large liberty
dawns, who are sailing to a long desired goal, who are sought after by the
greatest of military powers, who have pay in prospect, and for leaders
these Lacedaemonians, our acknowledged chiefs: now is the appointed time,
you think, to put me to a speedy death. But in the days of our
difficulties it was very different, O ye men of marvellous memory! No! in
those days you called me 'father!' and you promised you would bear me ever
in mind, 'your benefactor.' Not so, however, not so ungracious are those
who have come to you to-day; nor, if I mistake not, have you bettered
yourselves in their eyes by your treatment of me."</p>
<p>With these words he paused, and Charminus the Lacedaemonian got up and
said: "Nay, by the Twins, you are wrong, surely, in your anger against
this man; I myself can bear testimony in his favour. When Polynicus and I
asked Seuthes, what sort of a man he was? Seuthes answered:—he had
but one fault to find with him, that he was too much the soldiers' friend,
which also was the cause why things went wrong with him, whether as
regards us Lacedaemonians or himself, Seuthes."</p>
<p>Upon that Eurylochus of Lusia, an Arcadian, got up and said (addressing
the two Lacedaemonians), "Yes, sirs; and what strikes me is that you
cannot begin your generalship of us better than by exacting from Seuthes
our pay. Whether he like it or no, let him pay in full; and do not take us
away before."</p>
<p>Polycrates the Athenian, who was put forward by Xenophon, said: "If my
eyes do not deceive me, sirs, there stands Heracleides, yonder, the man
who received the property won by our toil, who took and sold it, and never
gave back either to Seuthes or to us the proceeds of the sale, but kept
the money to himself, like the thief he is. If we are wise, we will lay
hold of him, for he is no Thracian, but a Hellene; and against Hellenes is
the wrong he has committed."</p>
<p>When Heracleides heard these words, he was in great consternation; so he
came to Seuthes and said: "If we are wise we will get away from here out
of reach of these fellows." So they mounted their horses and were gone in
a trice, galloping to their own camp. Subsequently Seuthes sent
Abrozelmes, his private interpreter, to Xenophon, begging him to stay
behind with one thousand heavy troops; and engaging duly to deliver to him
the places on the seaboard, and the other things which he had promised;
and then, as a great secret, he told him, that he had heard from Polynicus
that if he once got into the clutches of the Lacedaemonians, Thibron was
certain to put him to death. Similar messages kept coming to Xenophon by
letter or otherwise from several quarters, warning him that he was
calumniated, and had best be on his guard. Hearing which, he took two
victims and sacrificed to Zeus the King: "Whether it were better and
happier to stay with Seuthes on the terms proposed, or depart with the
army?" The answer he received was, "Depart."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0059" id="link2H_4_0059"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VII </h2>
<p>After this, Seuthes removed his camp to some considerable distance; and
the Hellenes took up their quarters in some villages, selecting those in
which they could best supply their commissariat, on the road to the sea.
Now these particular villages had been given by Seuthes to Medosades.
Accordingly, when the latter saw his property in the villages being
expended by the Hellenes, he was not over well pleased; and taking with
him an Odrysian, a powerful person amongst those who had come down from
the interior, and about thirty mounted troopers, he came and challenged
Xenophon to come forth from the Hellenic host. He, taking some of the
officers and others of a character to be relied upon, came forward. Then
Medosades, addressing Xenophon, said: "You are doing wrong to pillage our
villages; we give you fair warning—I, in behalf of Seuthes, and this
man by my side, who comes from Medocus, the king up country—to
begone out of the land. If you refuse, understand, we have no notion of
handing it over to you; but if you injure our country we will retaliate
upon you as foes."</p>
<p>Xenophon, hearing what they had to say, replied: "Such language addressed
to us by you, of all people, is hard to answer. Yet for the sake of the
young man with you, I will attempt to do so, that at least he may learn
how different your nature is from ours. We," he continued, "before we were
your friends, had the free run of this country, moving this way or that,
as it took our fancy, pillaging and burning just as we chose; and you
yourself, Medosades, whenever you came to us on an embassy, camped with
us, without apprehension of any foe. As a tribe collectively you scarcely
approached the country at all, or if you found yourselves in it, you
bivouacked with your horses bitted and bridled, as being in the territory
of your superiors. Presently you made friends with us, and, thanks to us,
by God's help you have won this country, out of which to-day you seek to
drive us; a country which we held by our own strength and gave to you. No
hostile force, as you well know, was capable of expelling us. It might
have been expected of you personally to speed us on our way with some
gift, in return for the good we did you. Not so; even though our backs are
turned to go, we are too slow in our movements for you. You will not
suffer us to take up quarters even, if you can help it, and these words
arouse no shame in you, either before the gods, or this Odrysian, in whose
eyes to-day you are man of means, though until you cultivated our
friendship you lived a robber's life, as you have told us. However, why do
you address yourself to me? I am no longer in command. Our generals are
the Lacedaemonians, to whom you and yours delivered the army for
withdrawal; and that, without even inviting me to attend, you most
marvellous of men, so that if I lost their favour when I brought you the
troops, I might now win their gratitude by restoring them."</p>
<p>As soon as the Odrysian had heard this statement, he exclaimed: "For my
part, Medosades, I sink under the earth for very shame at what I hear. If
I had known the truth before, I would never have accompanied you. As it
is, I return at once. Never would King Medocus applaud me, if I drove
forth his benefactors." With these words, he mounted his horse and rode
away, and with him the rest of his horsemen, except four or five. But
Medosades, still vexed by the pillaging of the country, urged Xenophon to
summon the two Lacedaemonians; and he, taking the pick of his men, came to
Charminus and Polynicus and informed them that they were summoned by
Medosades; probably they, like himself, would be warned to leave the
country; "if so," he added, "you will be able to recover the pay which is
owing to the army. You can say to them, that the army has requested you to
assist in exacting their pay from Seuthes, whether he like it or not; that
they have promised, as soon as they get this, cheerfully to follow you;
that the demand seems to you to be only just, and that you have
accordingly promised not to leave, until the soldiers have got their
dues." The Lacedaemonians accepted the suggestion: they would apply these
arguments and others the most forcible they could hit upon; and with the
proper representatives of the army, they immediately set off.</p>
<p>On their arrival Charminus spoke: "If you have anything to say to us,
Medosades, say it; but if not, we have something to say to you." And
Medosades submissively made answer: "I say," said he, "and Seuthes says
the same: we think we have a right to ask that those who have become our
friends should not be ill-treated by you; whatever ill you do to them you
really do to us, for they are a part of us." "Good!" replied the
Lacedaemonians, "and we intend to go away as soon as those who won for you
the people and the territory in question have got their pay. Failing that,
we are coming without further delay to assist them and to punish certain
others who have broken their oaths and done them wrong. If it should turn
out that you come under this head, when we come to exact justice, we shall
begin with you." Xenophon added: "Would you prefer, Medosades, to leave it
to these people themselves, in whose country we are (your friends, since
this is the designation you prefer), to decide by ballot, which of the two
should leave the country, you or we?" To that proposal he shook his head,
but he trusted the two Laconians might be induced to go to Seuthes about
the pay, adding, "Seuthes, I am sure, will lend a willing ear;" or if they
could not go, then he prayed them to send Xenophon with himself, promising
to lend the latter all the aid in his power, and finally he begged them
not to burn the villages. Accordingly they sent Xenophon, and with him a
serviceable staff. Being arrived, he addressed Seuthes thus:—</p>
<p>"Seuthes, I am here to advance no claims, but to show you, if I can, how
unjust it was on your part to be angered with me because I zealously
demanded of you on behalf of the soldiers what you promised them.
According to my belief, it was no less to your interest to deliver it up,
than it was to theirs to receive it. I cannot forget that, next to the
gods, it was they who raised you up to a conspicuous eminence, when they
made you king of large territory and many men, a position in which you
cannot escape notice, whether you do good or do evil. For a man so
circumstanced, I regarded it as a great thing that he should avoid the
suspicion even of ungrateful parting with his benefactors. It was a great
thing, I thought, that you should be well spoken of by six thousand human
beings; but the greatest thing of all, that you should in no wise
discredit the sincerity of your own word. For what of the man who cannot
be trusted? I see that the words of his mouth are but vain words,
powerless, and unhonoured; but with him who is seen to regard truth, the
case is otherwise. He can achieve by his words what another achieves by
force. If he seeks to bring the foolish to their senses—his very
frown, I perceive, has a more sobering effect than the chastisement
inflicted by another. Or in negotiations the very promises of such an one
are of equal weight with the gifts of another.</p>
<p>"Try and recall to mind in your own case, what advance of money you made
to us to purchase our alliance. You know you did not advance one penny. It
was simply confidence in the sincerity of your word which incited all
these men to assist you in your campaign, and so to acquire for you an
empire, worth many times more than thirty talents, which is all they now
claim to receive. Here then, first of all, goes the credit which won for
you your kingdom, sold for so mean a sum. Let me remind you of the great
importance which you then attached to the acquisition of your present
conquests. I am certain that to achieve what stands achieved to-day, you
would willingly have foregone the gain of fifty times that paltry sum. To
me it seems that to lose your present fortune were a more serious loss
than never to have won it; since surely it is harder to be poor after
being rich than never to have tasted wealth at all, and more painful to
sink to the level of a subject, being a king, then never to have worn a
crown.</p>
<p>"You cannot forget that your present vassals were not persuaded to become
your subjects out of love for you, but by sheer force; and but for some
restraining dread they would endeavour to be free again to-morrow. And how
do you propose to stimulate their sense of awe, and keep them in good
behaviour towards you? Shall they see our soldiers so disposed towards you
that a word on your part would suffice to keep them now, or if necessary
would bring them back again to-morrow? while others hearing from us a
hundred stories in your praise, hasten to present themselves at your
desire? Or will you drive them to conclude adversely, that through
mistrust of what has happened now, no second set of soldiers will come to
help you, for even these troops of ours are more their friends than yours?
And indeed it was not because they fell short of us in numbers that they
became your subjects, but from lack of proper leaders. There is a danger,
therefore, now lest they should choose as their protectors some of us who
regard ourselves as wronged by you, or even better men than us—the
Lacedaemonians themselves; supposing our soldiers undertake to serve with
more enthusiasm, if the debt you owe to them be first exacted; and the
Lacedaemonians, who need their services, consent to this request. It is
plain, at any rate, that the Thracians, now prostrate at your feet, would
display far more enthusiasm in attacking, than in assisting you; for your
mastery means their slavery, and your defeat their liberty.</p>
<p>"Again, the country is now yours, and from this time forward you have to
make provision for what is yours; and how will you best secure it an
immunity from ill? Either these soldiers receive their dues and go,
leaving a legacy of peace behind, or they stay and occupy an enemy's
country, whilst you endeavour, by aid of a still larger army, to open a
new campaign and turn them out; and your new troops will also need
provisions. Or again, which will be the greater drain on your purse? to
pay off your present debt, or, with that still owing, to bid for more
troops, and of a better quality?</p>
<p>"Heracleides, as he used to prove to me, finds the sum excessive. But
surely it is a far less serious thing for you to take and pay it back
to-day than it would have been to pay the tithe of it, before we came to
you; since the limit between less and more is no fixed number, but depends
on the relative capacity of payer and recipient, and your yearly income
now is larger than the whole property which you possessed in earlier days.</p>
<p>"Well, Seuthes, for myself these remarks are the expression of friendly
forethought for a friend. They are expressed in the double hope that you
may show yourself worthy of the good things which the gods have given you,
and that my reputation may not be ruined with the army. For I must assure
you that to-day, if I wished to injure a foe, I could not do so with this
army. Nor again, if I wished to come and help you, should I be competent
to the task; such is the disposition of the troops towards me. And yet I
call you to witness, along with the gods who know, that never have I
received anything from you on account of the soldiers. Never to this day
have I, to my private gain, asked for what was theirs, nor even claimed
the promises which were made to myself; and I swear to you, not even had
you proposed to pay me my dues, would I have accepted them, unless the
soldiers also had been going to receive theirs too; how could I? How
shameful it would have been in me, so to have secured my own interests,
whilst I disregarded the disastrous state of theirs, I being so honoured
by them. Of course to the mind of Heracleides this is all silly talk;
since the one great object is to keep money by whatever means. That is not
my tenet, Seuthes. I believe that no fairer or brighter jewel can be given
to a man, and most of all a prince, than the threefold grace of valour,
justice, and generosity. He that possesses these is rich in the multitude
of friends which surround him; rich also in the desire of others to be
included in their number. While he prospers, he is surrounded by those who
will rejoice with him in his joy; or if misfortune overtake him, he has no
lack of sympathisers to give him help. However, if you have failed to
learn from my deeds that I was, heart and soul, your friend; if my words
are powerless to reveal the fact to-day, I would at least direct your
attention to what the soldiers said; you were standing by and heard what
those who sought to blame me said. They accused me to the Lacedaemonians,
and the point of their indictment was that I set greater store by yourself
than by the Lacedaemonians; but, as regards themselves, the charge was
that I took more pains to secure the success of your interests than their
own. They suggested that I had actually taken gifts from you. Was it, do
you suppose, because they detected some ill-will in me towards you that
they made the allegation? Was it not rather, that they had noticed my
abundant zeal on your behalf?</p>
<p>"All men believe, I think, that a fund of kindly feeling is due to him
from whom we accept gifts. But what is your behaviour? Before I had
ministered to you in any way, or done you a single service, you welcomed
me kindly with your eyes, your voice, your hospitality, and you could not
sate yourself with promises of all the fine things that were to follow.
But having once achieved your object, and become the great man you now
are, as great indeed as I could make you, you can stand by and see me
degraded among my own soldiers! Well, time will teach you—that I
fully believe—to pay whatever seems to you right, and even without
the lessons of that teacher you will hardly care to see whose who have
spent themselves in benefiting you, become your accusers. Only, when you
do pay your debt, I beg of you to use your best endeavour to right me with
the soldiers. Leave me at least where you found me; that is all I ask."</p>
<p>After listening to this appeal, Seuthes called down curses on him, whose
fault it was, that the debt had not long ago been paid, and, if the
general suspicion was correct, this was Heracleides. "For myself," said
Seuthes, "I never had any idea of robbing you of your just dues. I will
repay." Then Xenophon rejoined: "Since you are minded to pay, I only ask
that you will do so through me, and will not suffer me on your account to
hold a different position in the army from what I held when we joined
you." He replied: "As far as that goes, so far from holding a less
honoured position among your own men on my account, if you will stay with
me, keeping only a thousand heavy infantry, I will deliver to you the
fortified places and everything I promised." The other answered: "On these
terms I may not accept them, only let us go free." "Nay, but I know," said
Seuthes, "that it is safer for you to bide with me than to go away." Then
Xenophon again: "For your forethought I thank you, but I may not stay.
Somewhere I may rise to honour, and that, be sure, shall redound to your
gain also." Thereupon Seuthes spoke: "Of silver I have but little; that
little, however, I give to you, one talent; but of beeves I can give you
six hundred head, and of sheep four thousand, and of slaves six score.
These take, and the hostages besides, who wronged you, and begone."
Xenophon laughed and said: "But supposing these all together do not amount
to the pay; for whom is the talent, shall I say? It is a little dangerous
for myself, is it not? I think I had better be on the look-out for stones
when I return. You heard the threats?"</p>
<p>So for the moment he stayed there, but the next day Seuthes gave up to
them what he had promised, and sent an escort to drive the cattle. The
soldiers at first maintained that Xenophon had gone to take up his abode
with Seuthes, and to receive what he had been promised; so when they saw
him they were pleased, and ran to meet him. And Xenophon, seeing Charminus
and Polynicus, said: "Thanks to your intervention, this much has been
saved for the army. My duty is to deliver this fraction over to your
keeping; do you divide and distribute it to the soldiers." Accordingly
they took the property and appointed official vendors of the booty, and in
the end incurred considerable blame. Xenophon held aloof. In fact it was
no secret that he was making his preparations to return home, for as yet
the vote of banishment had not been passed at Athens (1). But the
authorities in the camp came to him and begged him not to go away until he
had conducted the army to its destination, and handed it over to Thibron.</p>
<p>(1) I.e. "at this moment the vote of banishment had not been passed<br/>
which would prevent his return to Athens." The natural inference<br/>
from these words is, I think, that the vote of banishment was<br/>
presently passed, at any rate considerably earlier than the battle<br/>
of Coronea in B.C. 394, five years and a half afterwards.<br/></p>
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0060" id="link2H_4_0060"></SPAN></p>
<h2> VIII </h2>
<p>From this place they sailed across to Lampsacus, and here Xenophon was met
by Eucleides the soothsayer, a Phliasian, the son of Cleagoras, who
painted "the dreams (1)" in the Lycium. Eucleides congratulated Xenophon
upon his safe return, and asked him how much gold he had got? and Xenophon
had to confess: "Upon my word, I shall have barely enough to get home,
unless I sell my horse, and what I have about my person." The other could
not credit the statement. Now when the Lampsacenes sent gifts of
hospitality to Xenophon, and he was sacrificing to Apollo, he requested
the presence of Eucleides; and the latter, seeing the victims, said: "Now
I believe what you said about having no money. But I am certain," he
continued, "if it were ever to come, there is an obstacle in the way. If
nothing else, you are that obstacle yourself." Xenophon admitted the force
of that remark. Then the other: "Zeus Meilichios (2) is an obstacle to
you, I am sure," adding in another tone of voice, "have you tried
sacrificing to that god, as I was wont to sacrifice and offer whole burnt
offerings for you at home?" Xenophon replied that since he had been
abroad, he had not sacrificed to that god. Accordingly Eucleides
counselled him to sacrifice in the old customary way: he was sure that his
fortune would improve. The next day Xenophon went on to Ophrynium and
sacrificed, offering a holocaust of swine, after the custom of his family,
and the signs which he obtained were favourable. That very day Bion and
Nausicleides arrived laden with gifts for the army. These two were
hospitably entertained by Xenophon, and were kind enough to repurchase the
horse he had sold in Lampsacus for fifty darics; suspecting that he had
parted with it out of need, and hearing that he was fond of the beast they
restored it to him, refusing to be remunerated.</p>
<p>(1) Reading {ta enupnia}, or if {ta entoikhia} with Hug and others,<br/>
translate "the wall-paintings" or the "frescoes." Others think<br/>
that a writing, not a painting, is referred to.<br/>
<br/>
(2) Zeus Meilichios, or the gentle one. See Thuc. i. 126. The festival<br/>
of the Diasia at Athens was in honour of that god, or rather of<br/>
Zeus under that aspect. Cf. Arist. "Clouds," 408.<br/></p>
<p>From that place they marched through the Troad, and, crossing Mount Ida,
arrived at Antandrus, and then pushed along the seaboard of Mysia to the
plain of Thebe (3). Thence they made their way through Adramytium and
Certonus (4) by Atarneus, coming into the plain of the Caicus, and so
reached Pergamus in Mysia.</p>
<p>(3) Thebe, a famous ancient town in Mysia, at the southern foot of Mt.<br/>
Placius, which is often mentioned in Homer ("Il." i. 366, vi. 397,<br/>
xxii. 479, ii. 691). See "Dict. Geog." s.v. The name {Thebes<br/>
pedion} preserves the site. Cf. above {Kaustrou pedion}, and such<br/>
modern names as "the Campagna" or "Piano di Sorrento."<br/>
<br/>
(4) The site of Certonus is not ascertained. Some critics have<br/>
conjectured that the name should be Cytonium, a place between<br/>
Mysia and Lydia; and Hug, who reads {Kutoniou}, omits {odeusantes<br/>
par 'Atanea}, "they made their way by Atarneus," as a gloss.<br/></p>
<p>Here Xenophon was hospitably entertained at the house of Hellas, the wife
of Gongylus the Eretrian (5), the mother of Gorgion and Gongylus. From her
he learnt that Asidates, a Persian notable, was in the plain. "If you take
thirty men and go by night, you will take him prisoner," she said, "wife,
children, money, and all; of money he has a store;" and to show them the
way to these treasures, she sent her own cousin and Daphnagoras, whom she
set great store by. So then Xenophon, with these two to assist, did
sacrifice; and Basias, an Eleian, the soothsayer in attendance, said that
the victims were as promising as could be, and the great man would be an
easy prey. Accordingly, after dinner he set off, taking with him the
officers who had been his staunchest friends and confidants throughout; as
he wished to do them a good turn. A number of others came thrusting
themselves on their company, to the number of six hundred, but the
officers repelled them: "They had no notion of sharing their portion of
the spoil," they said, "just as though the property lay already at their
feet."</p>
<p>(5) Cf. Thuc. i. 128; also "Hell." III. i. 6.<br/></p>
<p>About midnight they arrived. The slaves occupying the precincts of the
tower, with the mass of goods and chattles, slipped through their fingers,
their sole anxiety being to capture Asidates and his belongings. So they
brought their batteries to bear, but failing to take the tower by assault
(since it was high and solid, and well supplied with ramparts, besides
having a large body of warlike defenders), they endeavoured to undermine
it. The wall was eight clay bricks thick, but by daybreak the passage was
effected and the wall undermined. At the first gleam of light through the
aperture, one of the defendants inside, with a large ox-spit, smote right
through the thigh of the man nearest the hole, and the rest discharged
their arrows so hotly that it was dangerous to come anywhere near the
passage; and what with their shouting and kindling of beacon fires, a
relief party at length arrived, consisting of Itabelius at the head of his
force, and a body of Assyrian heavy infantry from Comania, and some
Hyrcanian cavalry (6), the latter also being mercenaries of the king.
There were eighty of them, and another detachment of light troops, about
eight hundred, and more from Parthenium, and more again from Apollonia and
the neighbouring places, also cavalry.</p>
<p>(6) The Hyrcanian cavalry play an important part in the "Cyropaedeia."<br/>
They are the Scirites of the Assyrian army who came over to Cyrus<br/>
after the first battle. Their country is the fertile land touching<br/>
the south-eastern corner of the Caspian. Cf. "Cyrop." IV. ii. 8,<br/>
where the author (or an editor) appends a note on the present<br/>
status of the Hyrcanians.<br/></p>
<p>It was now high time to consider how they were to beat a retreat. So
seizing all the cattle and sheep to be had, with the slaves, they put them
within a hollow square and proceed to drive them off. Not that they had a
thought to give to the spoils now, but for precaution's sake and for fear
lest if they left the goods and chattels behind and made off, the retreat
would rapidly degenerate into a stampede, the enemy growing bolder as the
troops lost heart. For the present then they retired as if they meant to
do battle for the spoils. As soon as Gongylus espied how few the Hellenes
were and how large the attacking party, out he came himself, in spite of
his mother, with his private force, wishing to share in the action.
Another too joined in the rescue—Procles, from Halisarna and
Teuthrania, a descendant of Damaratus. By this time Xenophon and his men
were being sore pressed by the arrows and slingstones, though they marched
in a curve so as to keep their shields facing the missiles, and even so,
barely crossed the river Carcasus, nearly half of them wounded. Here it
was that Agasias the Stymphalian, the captain, received his wound, while
keeping up a steady unflagging fight against the enemy from beginning to
end. And so they reached home in safety with about two hundred captives,
and sheep enough for sacrifices.</p>
<p>The next day Xenophon sacrificed and led out the whole army under the
cover of night, intending to pierce far into the heart of Lydia with a
view to lulling to sleep the enemy's alarm at his proxmity, and so in fact
to put him off his guard. But Asidates, hearing that Xenophon had again
sacrificed with the intention of another attack, and was approaching with
his whole army, left his tower and took up quarters in some villages lying
under the town of Parthenium. Here Xenophon's party fell in with him, and
took him prisoner, with his wife, his children, his horses, and all that
he had; and so the promise of the earlier victims was literally fulfilled.
After that they returned again to Pergamus, and here Xenophon might well
thank God with a warm heart, for the Laconians, the officers, the other
generals, and the soldiers as a body united to give him the pick of horses
and cattle teams, and the rest; so that he was now in a position himself
to do another a good turn.</p>
<p>Meanwhile Thibron arrived and received the troops which he incorporated
with the rest of his Hellenic forces, and so proceeded to prosecute a war
against Tissaphernes and Pharnabazus (7).</p>
<p>(7) The MSS. add: "The following is a list of the governors of the<br/>
several territories of the king which were traversed by us during<br/>
the expedition: Artimas, governor of Lydia; Artacamas, of Phrygia;<br/>
Mithridates, of Lycaonia and Cappadocia; Syennesis, of Cilicia;<br/>
Dernes, of Phoenicia and Arabia; Belesys, of Syria and Assyria;<br/>
Rhoparas, of Babylon; Arbacus, of Media; Tiribazus, of the<br/>
Phasians and Hesperites. Then some independent tribes—the<br/>
Carduchians or Kurds, and Chalybes, and Chaldaeans, and Macrones,<br/>
and Colchians, and Mossynoecians, and Coetians, and Tibarenians.<br/>
Then Corylas, the governor of Paphlagonia; Pharnabazus, of the<br/>
Bithynians; Seuthes, of the European Thracians. The entire<br/>
journey, ascent and descent, consisted of two hundred and fifteen<br/>
stages = one thousand one hundred and fifty-five parasangs =<br/>
thirty-four thousand six hundred and fifty stades. Computed in<br/>
time, the length of ascent and descent together amounted to one<br/>
year and three months." The annotator apparently computes the<br/>
distance from Ephesus to Cotyora.<br/></p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />